Institutes
Refine
Year of publication
Document Type
- Doctoral Thesis (245) (remove)
Has Fulltext
- yes (245) (remove)
Is part of the Bibliography
- no (245)
Keywords
- Metabolic Engineering (4)
- Saccharomyces cerevisiae (3)
- zebrafish (3)
- Biomarker (2)
- Mikroplastik (2)
- Schülerlabor (2)
- Xenorhabdus (2)
- ADAM15 (1)
- ALE (1)
- Acetogenic bacteria (1)
Institute
- Biowissenschaften (245) (remove)
Adhesion to host cells is the first and most crucial step in infections with pathogenic Gram negative bacteria and is often mediated by trimeric autotransporter adhesins (TAAs). TAA-producing bacteria are the causative agent of many human diseases and TAA targeted anti-adhesive compounds might counteract such bacterial infections. The modularly structured Bartonella adhesin A (BadA) is one of the best characterised TAAs and serves as an attractive adhesin to study the domain-function relationship of TAAs during infection. BadA is a major virulence factor of B. henselae and is essential for the initial attachment to host cells via adhesion to extracellular matrix proteins. B. henselae is the causative agent of cat scratch disease and adheres to fibronectin using its long BadA fibres. The life cycle of this pathogen, with alternating host conditions, drives evolutionary and host-specific adaptations.
Human, feline, and laboratory adapted B. henselae isolates display genomic and phenotypic differences. By analysing the genomes of eight B. henselae strains using long-read sequencing, a variable genomic badA island with a diversified and highly repetitive badA gene flanked by badA pseudogenes was identified. Moreover, numerous conserved flanking genes were characterised, however, their influence on the regulation of badA expression and modification remains to be explored. It seems that B. henselae G 5436 is the evolutionary ancestor of the other B. henselae strains analysed in this work. The diversity of the badA island among the B. henselae strains indicates that the downstream badA-like domain region might be used as a ‘toolbox’ for rearrangements in the badA gene. Overall, it is suggested that badA-domain duplications, insertions, and/or deletions are the result of active phase variation via site-specific recombination and contribute to rapid host adaptation in the scope of pathogenicity, immune evasion, and/or enhanced long-term colonisation.
The model strain B. henselae Marseille expresses a badA gene that includes 30 repetitive neck/stalk domains, each consisting of several predicted structural motifs. To further elucidate the motif sequences that mediate fibronectin binding, various modified badA constructs were generated. Their ability to bind fibronectin was assessed via whole-cell ELISA and fluorescence microscopy. In conclusion, it is suggested that BadA adheres to fibronectin in a cumulative fashion with quick saturation via unpaired β-strands appearing in structural motifs present in BadA neck/stalk domains 19, 27, and other homologous domains. Furthermore, antibodies targeting a 15-mer amino acid sequence in the DALL motif of BadA neck/stalk domain 27 were able to reduce fibronectin binding of the B. henselae mutant strain S27. Moreover, this DALL motif sequence is conserved in the genome of all analysed B. henselae strains. The identification of common binding motifs between BadA and fibronectin supports the development of new anti-adhesive compounds that might inhibit the initial adherence of B. henselae and other TAA-producing pathogens during infection.
Lipopolysaccharide (LPS) is a major glycolipid component in the outer leaflet of the outer membrane of Gram-negative bacteria and known as endotoxin exhibited by the lipid A moiety, which serves as a membrane anchor. The effective permeability barrier properties of the outer membrane contributed by the presence of LPS in the extracellular layer of the outer membrane confer Gram-negative bacteria a high resistance against hydrophobic compounds such as antibiotics, bile salts and detergents to survive in harsh environments. The biogenesis of LPS is well studied in Escherichia coli (herewith E. coli) and the LPS transport (Lpt) is carried out by a transenvelope complex composed of seven essential proteins (LptABCDEFG), which are located in the three compartments of the cell such as the outer membrane, the inner membrane and the periplasm. The Lpt system also exists in Anabaena sp. PCC 7120 (herewith Anabaena sp.), however, homologues of LptC and LptE are still missing. BLAST search failed to identify a homologue of LptC, in contrast, the secondary structure analysis using the Pfam database based on the existing ecLptC secondary structure identified one open reading frame All0231 as the putative Anabaena sp. homologue of LptC, which is designated anaLptC. Despite the low sequence similarity, the secondary structure alignment between anaLptC and ecLptC using the HHpred server showed that both proteins share high secondary structural similarities. The genotypic analysis of the insertion mutant anaLptC did not identify a fully segregated genome and its phenotypic analysis revealed that it was sensitive against chemicals, suggesting that the analptC gene is essential for the growth of Anabaena sp. and involved in the outer membrane biogenesis. This is further supported by the observation of the small cell phenotype in the anaLptC mutant via transmission electron microscopy. Moreover, physical interactions between the anaLptC periplasmic domain with anaLptA as well as with anaLptF were established, indicating that the anaLptC periplasmic domain is correctly folded and alone functional and that the transmembrane helix is not required for the interaction with anaLptA and anaLptF. Furthermore, the reduction of the O-antigen containing LPS was observed in the insertion mutant anaLptC and the dissociation constant Kd of the anaLptC periplasmic domain for ecLPS was determined.The three-dimensional structure of the periplasmic domain of anaLptC was solved by X-ray crystallography with a resolution of 2.8 Å. The structural superposition between the ecLptC crystal structure (PDB number 3my2) and the crystal structure of anaLptC periplasmic domain obtained by this study showed the similarity in the folding of the two proteins with a Cα r.m.s.d value of about 1 Å and confirmed that the length of anaLptC is more than two times longer than that of ecLptC. The structural comparison also revealed that both structures share the typical β-jellyroll fold and conserved amino acids, which were shown in ecLptC to bind to LPS in vivo and found in anaLptC. Overall, these data strongly suggest that anaLptC is involved in the transport of LPS and support the model whereby the bridge spanning the inner membrane and the outer membrane would be assembled via interactions of the structurally conserved β-jellyroll domains shared by five (LptACDFG) out of seven Lpt proteins.
Die Spinozerebelläre Ataxie Typ 2 (SCA2) ist eine autosomal dominant vererbte neurodegenerative Krankheit, welche durch die Expansion des Trinukleotids Cytosin-Adenin-Guanin von ~22/23 auf >32 im Ataxin-2 Gen (ATXN2) verursacht wird. Dieses Trinukleotid codiert für die Aminosäure Glutamin weshalb SCA2 auch zu den Polyglutaminerkrankungen zählt. Zu dieser Gruppe zählen außerdem fünf weitere SCA-Subtypen sowie drei weitere neurodegenerative Erkrankungen, darunter die Huntington-Krankheit.
SCA2 wurde 1971 zum ersten Mal von Wadia und Swami beschrieben und unterscheidet sich von den anderen SCAs aufgrund der typischen Störung der sakkadischen Augenbewegungen. Weitere klinische Symptome von SCA2 sind Ataxie, Tremor, Dysmetrie, Dysarthrie, Hyporeflexie und Dysdiadochokinese. Die Symptome gehen auf einen neuronalen Verlust insbesondere im Cerebellum, aber auch in anderen Hirnregionen wie zum Beispiel dem Hirnstamm zurück.
Atxn2 wird in weiten Teilen des Zentralnervensystems aber auch in vielen nicht-neuronalen Geweben exprimiert. Es handelt sich um ein überwiegend cytoplasmatisch lokalisiertes Protein, welches im Gegensatz zu vielen anderen SCA-Proteinen cytoplasmatische und nur selten nukleäre Aggregate bildet. Die exakte Funktion von Atxn2 ist bisher unklar, es wurde allerdings mehrfach gezeigt, dass es in die mRNA Translation involviert ist aufgrund seiner Interaktion mit dem PolyA-bindenden Protein PABPC1.
Eine Expansion des Trinukleotids in Ataxin-2 kann nicht nur zu SCA2 führen, sondern stellt bei Wiederholungen zwischen 27 und 32 CAGs auch ein erhöhtes Risiko für eine Erkrankung an Amyotropher Lateralsklerose (ALS) und anderen neurodegenerativen Krankheiten dar. Eine Interaktion zwischen ATXN2 und dem ALS-verursachenden TDP43 (Tardbp) wurde bereits zahlreich beforscht, da Aggregate von ATXN2 in Motoneuronen des Rückenmarks von ALS-Patienten und aggregiertes TDP43 in SCA2-Neuronen beobachtet wurden.
Generell sind die Mechanismen, die zur Pathologie von SCA2 und ALS führen, noch weitgehend unklar. Ziel dieser Arbeit war es daher auf der einen Seite einen Einblick in den Pathomechanismus von SCA2 zu erhalten, indem mögliche oder bereits bekannte Interaktoren in etablierten Atxn2-Mausmodellen untersucht wurden. Auf der anderen Seite wurden zwei neue Mausmodelle charakterisiert, um ihre Eignung für die Erforschung von ALS und SCA2 zu prüfen.
Für den ersten Teil der Arbeit dienten Daten aus mehreren Transkriptomstudien von Atxn2-Knock-Out (KO) und Atxn2-CAG42-Knock-In (KIN) Mäusen als Grundlage. Konnten die Daten mit einer unabhängigen Methode bestätigt werden, folgten weitere Untersuchungen auf mRNA und Proteinebene sowie unter zusätzlicher Verwendung von Zellkultur und Patientenmaterial. Dadurch konnten neue Interaktionspartner von ATXN2 identifiziert und bereits bekannte in diesen Mausmodellen bestätigt werden.
So wurde zum Beispiel eine Interaktion von ATXN2 mit der E3-Ubiquitin-Protein-Ligasekomponente FBXW8 gezeigt und deren Beteiligung am Abbau von expandiertem ATXN2. Außerdem wurde eine Interaktion von FBXW8 mit dem bereits bekannten ATXN2-degradierenden Protein PARK2 gezeigt. Eine Hochregulierung des Fbxw8 Transkripts wurde sowohl im Atxn2-CAG42-KIN-Mausmodell als auch in SCA2-Patientenfibroblasten gefunden, während Park2 in keinem der Modelle signifikant veränderte Transkriptspiegel aufwies. Diese Daten belegen die Relevanz von Fbxw8 für den Abbau von moderat-expandiertem Atxn2 und begründen weitere Studien zur genauen Funktion dieses Proteins im Pathomechanismus von Atxn2.
Des Weiteren wurden diverse Kalziumhomöostasefaktoren untersucht, welche eine konsistente Herunterregulierung der Transkripte in beiden Mausmodellen aufwiesen. Auf Proteinebene zeigten sich jedoch Unterschiede zwischen den Modellen. Diese Daten belegen, dass zwar ähnliche Transkriptveränderungen im KIN- und KO-Modell auftreten, diesen aber vermutlich verschiedene Mechanismen zugrunde liegen. Welche Mechanismen dies genau sind bleibt zu klären, es ist jedoch wahrscheinlich, dass im KIN-Modell die Aggregatbildung sowie in beiden Modellen die Beteiligung von ATXN2 an der Translationregulation eine Rolle spielen. Die Ergebnisse dieser Studie unterstreichen die Relevanz des Ca2+ Signalwegs für die Entwicklung von SCA2.
Der zweite Teil der Arbeit beinhaltet die Charakterisierung einer ATXN2/TDP43 Doppelmutante auf Verhaltensebene sowie die gründliche Evaluierung des Phänotyps einer vollkommen neuen SCA2 Mausmutante. Während in der Doppelmutante trotz doppelter Genmutation nur ein sehr schwacher Phänotyp auf Verhaltensebene festgestellt werden konnte und bis zu einem Alter von 12 Monaten keine Potenzierung der Mutationen zu beobachten war, zeigte die Atxn2-CAG100-KIN Maus signifikante und früh auftretende Pathologie. Neben einer verminderten Überlebensrate, einem Gewichtsverlust und diversen motorischen Störungen, konnten auch Aggregate des mutierten Proteins in diversen Hirnregionen identifiziert werden. Der Atxn2-CAG100-KIN Phänotyp spiegelt die humanen Symptome daher recht gut wider, weshalb diese Mausmutante ein wertvolles Modell für die weitere SCA2-Forschung darstellt.
Zusammengefasst zeigt diese Arbeit die Bedeutung des ATXN2-Interaktors FBXW8 im SCA2-Mausmodell als auch im Patientenmaterial. Sie betont die Relevanz des Atxn2-KO-Modells in Bezug auf Störungen der Kalziumhomöostase und dokumentiert die Alters- und Gewebespezifität dieser Veränderungen. Außerdem beinhaltet sie die vorläufige Beschreibung eines kombinierten Atxn2/TDP43-Mausmodells und schließlich die ausführliche Charakterisierung eines vollkommen neuen und äußerst wertvollen SCA2-Mausmodells.
This work deals with the characterization of three different type II polyketide synthase systems (PKS II) from the Gram-negative bacteria Xenorhabdus and Photorhabdus.
Particular attention was paid to a biochemically underexplored class of aryl polyene (APE) pigments. Bioinformatic analysis of enzymes involved in the biosynthesis and the in vitro reconstruction proved that the synthesis of APEs involves an unusual fatty acid-like elongation mechanism. Furthermore, the discovery of unexpected protein-protein interactions provided new insights into the multienzyme complex formation of this unusual PKS II system. Through collaboration with the groups from Prof. Michael Groll and junior Prof. Nina Morgner, two protein complexes were structurally solved and several native protein multimerization events were identified and allowed us to suggest a possible protein-interaction network. The results are summarized in publication ‘An Uncommon Type II PKS Catalyzes Biosynthesis of Aryl Polyene Pigments’ (first author; J. Am. Chem. Soc.).
In addition to in vitro-analysis, in vivo-studies were used to investigate the APE compound produced by X. doucetiae in more detail. The activation of the silent biosynthetic gene cluster (BGC) led to the detection of the APE compound in the homologous host. Further combination of homologous expression and targeted deletions of the APE BGC revealed an APE-lipid-like structure. MS-based analyses and purification of intermediates allowed us to deduce structural building blocks of the APE-lipid, which is composed of an APE structural core, a glucosamine residue and an unusual long-chain fatty acid with unusual conjugated double bonds and a phosphoethanolamine head group. In combination with the above stated in vitro-data, we assumed a plausible biosynthetic mechanism of the APE-lipid. The results are summarized in the section ‘Additional Results: Tracing the Full-length APE’.
The biosynthesis of isopropylstilbene (IPS) has already been well-studied by the Bode laboratory and the group of Prof. Ikuro Abe. Studies with Photorhabdus laumondii TT01 by the Bode group revealed the distributed locations and functions of the genes involved in biosynthesis, which originate from two pathways. Particularly, the Bode group first demonstrated that an unusual ketosynthase/cyclase (StlD) catalyzes the condensation of 5-phenyl-2,4-pentadienoyl-ACP and isovaleryl-beta-ketoacyl-ACP via a Michael addition. Such a pathway for stilbene formation is distinct from those widespread in plants. The Abe group solved the structure and biochemical mechanism of StlD and further investigated the aromatization reaction of the aromatase StlC. However, the generation of the required cinnamoyl-precursor 5-phenyl-2,4-pentadienoyl-ACP as a Michael acceptor for this cyclization reaction remained elusive. In this work, we were able to reconstitute the synthesis of the Michael acceptor in vitro, by the action of enzymes from the fatty acid biosynthesis. With the knowledge about the crucial cross-talk from primary and specialized metabolism, we further determined the minimal endowment for stilbene production in a heterologous host. Here, the discovered AasS enzyme StlB is responsible for the generation of cinnamoyl-ACP and among others, plFabH plays a key role as gatekeeper enzyme for further processing. With this information in hand, we were able to obtain IPS production in E. coli. These results are presented in the manuscript ‘Biosynthesis of the Multifunctional Isopropylstilbene in Photorhabdus laumondii Involves Cross-talk Between Specialized and Primary Metabolism’ (co-first author, manuscript).
The biosynthesis of the orange-to-red-pigmented anthraquinones (AQs) is the best-studied type II PKS system according to preliminary results. While several investigations by Brachmann et al. discovered the BGC and the overall product spectrum of the main AQ-256 and its methylated derivatives, data of Quiqin Zhou (Bode group) performed biochemical in vitro analysis paired with in vivo heterologous expression of the ant-genes antA-I. This led to the identification of shunt products that indicated an AQ-scaffold derived from an octaketide intermediate that gets shortened to a heptaketide by the hydrolase AntI, resulting in the main anthraquinone AQ-256. This PKS-shortening mechanism was further confirmed by the protein crystal structure of AntI by the Groll group (publication, minor contributions, co-author, Chem Sci. ‘Molecular Mechanism of Polyketide Shortening in Anthraquinone Biosynthesis of Photorhabdus luminescens’). Further substrate analysis of the P. luminescens AQ-producer and mutants revealed an inhibitory effect of cinnamic acid against the hydrolase AntI. Cinnamic acid might therefore be involved in regulation of AQ biosynthesis (‘Anthraquinone Production is Influenced by Cinnamic Acid’, first author, manuscript).
Biochemical analysis from Quiqin Zhou with the minimal PKS of the AQ-synthase further revealed the exclusive activation of the AQ-ACP by the PPTase AntB. The PPTase is insoluble alone but gets stabilized by the CoA-ligase, most likely inactive, working as a chaperone. Thus, the minimal PKS endowment to produce the octaketide scaffold compromises, besides the ACP, the KS:CLF heterodimer and the MCAT, the co-occurrence of the PPTase AntB and the CoA-ligase AntG. For the first time, X-ray crystallography depicted a minimal PKS in action, by obtaining the structural data of native complexes from an ACP:KS:CLF, the KS:CLF alone and an ACP:MCAT in their non-active and active forms. It was possible to confirm a KS-bound hexaketide, which was built upon heterologous expression of the KS:CLF. Mutagenesis with amino-acids proposed to be involved in protein-protein interactions in the ACP:KS:CLF complex revealed some interesting protein-interaction sites. Additionally, an induced-fit mechanism of the MCAT with the ACP during the malonylation reaction confirmed a monodirectional transfer reaction (‘Structural Snapshots of the Minimal PKS System Responsible for Octaketide Biosynthesis’ co-author, manuscript under review).
Heat stress transcription factors (Hsfs) have an essential role in heat stress response (HSR) and thermotolerance by controlling the expression of hundreds of genes including heat shock proteins (Hsps) with molecular chaperone functions. Hsf family in plants shows a striking multiplicity, with more than 20 members in many species. In Solanum lycopersicum HsfA1a was reported to act as the master regulator of the onset of HSR and therefore is essential for basal thermotolerance. Evidence for this was provided by the analysis of HsfA1a co-suppression (A1CS) transgenic plants, which exhibited hypersensitivity upon exposure to heat stress (HS) due to the inability of the plants to induce the expression of many HS-genes including HsfA2, HsfB1 and several Hsps. Completion of tomato genome sequencing allowed the completion of the Hsf inventory, which is consisted of 27 members, including another three HsfA1 genes, namely HsfA1b, HsfA1c and HsfA1e.
Consequently, the suppression effect of the short interference RNA in A1CS lin e was re-evaluated for all HsfA1 genes. We found that expression of all HsfA1 proteins was suppressed in A1CS protoplasts. This result suggested that the model of single master regulator needs to be re-examined.
Expression analysis revealed that HsfA1a is constitutively expressed in different tissues and in response to HS, while HsfA1c and HsfA1e are minimally expressed in general, and show an induction during fruit ripening and a weak upregulation in late HSR. Instead HsfA1b shows preferential expression in specific tissues and is strongly and rapidly induced in response to HS. At the protein level HsfA1b and HsfA1e are rapidly degraded while HsfA1a and HsfA1c show a higher stability. In addition, HsfA1a and HsfA1c show a nucleocytosolic distribution, while HsfA1b and HsfA1e a strong nuclear retention.
A major property of a master regulator in HSR is thought to be its ability to cause a strong transactivation of a wide range of genes required for the initial activation of protective mechanisms. GUS reporter assays as well as analysis of transcript levels of several endogenous transcripts in protoplasts transiently expressing HsfA1 proteins revealed that HsfA1a can stimulate the transcription of many genes, while the other Hsfs have weaker activity and only on limited set of target genes. The low activity of HsfA1c and HsfA1e can be attributed to the lower DNA capacity of the two factors as judged by a GUS reporter repressor assay.
HsfA1a has been shown to have synergistic activity with the stress induced HsfA2 and HsfB1. The formation of such complexes is considered as important for stimulation of transcription and long term stress adaptation. All HsfA1 members show synergistic activity with HsfA2, while only HsfA1a act as co-activator of HsfB1 and HsfA7. Interestingly, HsfA1b shows an exceptional synergistic activity with HsfA3, suggesting that different Hsf complexes might regulate different HS-related gene networks. Altogether these results suggest that HsfA1a has unique characteristics within HsfA1 subfamily. This result is interesting considering the very high sequencing similarity among HsfA1s, and particularly among HsfA1a and HsfA1c.
To understand the molecular basis of this discrepancy, a series of domain swapping mutants between HsfA1a and HsfA1c were generated. Oligomerization domain and C-terminal swaps did not affect the basal activity or co-activity of the proteins. Remarkably, an HsfA1a mutant harbouring the N-terminus of HsfA1c shows reduced activity and co-activity, while the reciprocal HsfA1c with the N-terminus of HsfA1a cause a gain of activity and enhanced DNA binding capacity.
Sequence analysis of the DBD of HsfA1 proteins revealed a divergence in the highly conserved C-terminus of the turn of β3-β4 sheet. As the vast majority of HsfA1 proteins, HsfA1a at this position comprises an Arg residue (R107), while HsfA1c a Leu and HsfA1e a Cys. An HsfA1a-R107L mutant has reduced DNA binding capacity and consequently activity. Therefore, the results presented here point to the essential function of this amino acid residue for DNA binding function. Interestingly, the mutation did not affect the activity of the protein on Hsp70-1, suggesting that the functionality of the DBD and consequently the transcription factor on different promoters with variable heat stress element number and architecture is dependent on structural peculiarities of the DBD.
In conclusion, the unique properties including expression pattern, transcriptional activities, stability, DBD-peculiarities are likely responsible for the dominant function of HsfA1a as a master regulator of HSR in tomato. Instead, other HsfA1-members are only participating in HSR or developmental regulations by regulating a specific set of genes. Furthermore, HsfA1b and HsfA1e are likely function as stress primers in specific tissues while HsfA1c as a co-regulator in mild HSR. Thereby, tomato subclass A1 presents another example of function diversity not only within the Hsf family but also within the Hsf-subfamily of closely related members. The diversification based on DBD peculiarities is likely to occur in potato as well. Therefore this might have eliminated the functional redundancy observed in other species such as Arabidopsis thaliana but has probably allowed the more refined regulation of Hsf networks possibly under different stress regimes, tissues and cell types.
Characterizing the hologenome of Lasallia pustulata and tracing genomic footprints of lichenization
(2017)
The lichen symbiosis – consisting of fungal mycobionts and photoautotroph photobionts (green algae or cyanobacteria) – is globally successful. It covers an estimated 6% of the global surface with habitats ranging from deserts to the arctic. This success is reflected in the diversity of the mycobionts, with around 21% of all fungal species participating in lichen symbioses that can be facultative or obligate. Lichenization is furthermore evolutionary old, with fossil evidence for lichens reaching back 415 million years. For an individual fungal lineage, the Lecanoromycetes, the lichenization happened around 300 million years ago. This longstanding symbiotic relationship and the diversity of observed symbiotic dependency make them promising models to study the genomic consequences that follow the establishment of symbioses. Despite this, only little is known about the genomic effects of lichenization and extreme symbiotic dependency. To fill this gap we sequenced the hologenome of the lichen Lasallia pustulata, where the mycobiont could so far not been cultivated, suggesting that it might be more dependent on its symbionts.
As the poor culturability of lichen symbionts renders their genomes inaccessible to standard sequencing practices, we evaluated the extent to which different metagenome sequencing- and de novo assembly-strategies can be used to sequence and reconstruct the genomes of the individual symbionts. We find that the abundances of individual genomes present in the L. pustulata hologenome vary substantially, with the mycobiont being most abundant. Using in silico generated data sets and real Illumina sequencing data for L. pustulata we observe that the skewed abundances prevent a contiguous assembly of the underrepresented genomes when using only short-read sequencing. We conclude that short-read sequencing can offer first insights into lichen hologenomes. The fragmentation of the reconstructions hinders downstream analyses into the genomic consequences of lichenization though, as these are focused on identifying the gain and loss of genes.
We thus demonstrate a hybrid genome assembly strategy that is based on both short- and long-read sequencing. We show that this strategy is capable of creating highly contiguous genome reconstructions, not only for the L. pustulata mycobiont but also its photobiont Trebouxia sp., along with substantial amounts of the bacterial microbiome. A subsequent analysis of the microbiome of L. pustulata – performed over nine different samples collected in Germany and Italy – showed a stable taxonomic composition across the geographic range. We find that Acidobacteriaceae, which are known to thrive in nutrient poor habitats, are the dominant taxa. These would make them well adapted for the co-habitation with L. pustulata, which largely grows on rocks. Whether the Acidobacteriaceae are functionally involved in the lichen symbiosis is unclear so far.
As further comparative genomic studies rely on comprehensive genome annotations, we evaluate the completeness and fidelity of the gene annotations for the mycobiont L. pustulata as well as four further Lecanoromycetes. This reveals that un- and mis-annotated genes impact all evaluated genomes, with artificially joined genes and unannotated genes having the largest impact. In addition to these factors we find that the sequence composition – especially G/C-rich inverted repeats – lead to sequencing errors that interfere with the gene prediction. We minimize the effects of these artifacts through a rigorous curation.
Given the extremely sparse taxon sampling of available green alga genomes, we focus our search for the genomic footprints of lichenization on the mycobionts. We compare the genomes of the Lecanoromycetes to their closest relatives, the Eurotiomycetes and Dothideomycetes. This reveals that the last common ancestor of the Lecanoromycetes has lost around 10% of its genes after they split from the non-lichenized ancestor they share with the Eurotiomycetes. These losses are furthermore enriched, showing an excessive loss of genes involved with the degradation of polysaccharides. The loss of these genes fits a change from an ancestral saprotrophic lifestyle that depends on degrading complex plant matter, to the symbiotic lifestyle that relies on simpler nutrients provided by the photobionts. While the last common ancestor of the Lecanoromycetes additionally gained around 400 genes these could so far not be further characterized due to a lack of functionally annotated reference data.
As the mycobiont L. pustulata could so far not been grown in axenic culture, we initially expected to find an extensive genomic remodeling compared to the other mycobionts that easily grow in culture. We do not find evidence for this. Analyzing both the contraction of gene families and the loss of genes, we observe that L. pustulata and Umbilicaria muehlenbergii – its close relative that is easily grown in culture – share most of these. Furthermore, L. pustulata does not show an excessive loss of evolutionary old and well-conserved genes. These effects are mirrored on the functional level, as neither gene family contractions nor gene losses show a functional enrichment. This is partially due to the lack of functional reference data, analogous to the genes gained in the Lecanoromycetes, rendering their characterization hard. Thus, further studies on the genomic consequences of lichenization and differences in symbiotic dependence will have to be conducted, including larger taxon sets. This will be even more important for the photobionts, as the Chlorophyta are even more sparsely sampled today, hindering an effective functional and evolutionary study.
Die oxygene Photosynthese bildet den Grundpfeiler des heutigen Ökosystems unseres Planeten. Neben den gut untersuchten Landpflanzen bilden Mikroalgen eine äußerst bedeutende Organismengruppe der phototrophen Lebewesen. Zu den Mikroalgen zählen die Diatomeen, welche sich beispielsweise durch eine Silikatschale und spezielle Lichtsammelkomplexe auszeichnen und für einen Großteil der marinen Primärproduktion verantwortlich sind. Die stoffwechselphysiologischen Grundlagen des ökologischen Erfolgs der Kieselalgen sind bislang noch unzureichend erforscht. Ein Vertreter der zentrischen Diatomeen, Cyclotella, wurde bereits zur Jahrtausendwende zur biochemischen Charakterisierung der Diatomeen Photosynthese verwendet (Eppard und Rhiel, 1998; Eppard und Rhiel, 2000), das Genom des Organismus aber erst vor kurzem sequenziert (Traller et al., 2016). Die Sequenzierung des Genoms konnte einige Gene für Lichtsammelproteine identifizieren, die Homologie zu den LhcSR-Proteinen aus C. reinhardtii aufweisen, welche nachweislich eine photoprotektive Funktion besitzen (Peers et al., 2009). Diese sogenannten Lhcx-Proteine der Diatomeen sind in den zwei Gruppen der Kieselalgen, den zentrischen und pennaten Diatomeen zu finden, unterscheiden sich aber in ihren jeweiligen Lhcx-Kandidaten. So können in der pennaten Diatomee P. tricornutum vier lhcx-Gene ausgemacht werden, während die zentrische Kieselalge T. pseudonana sechs lhcx-Gene besitzt und C. cryptica vier verschiedene lhcx-Kandidaten genomisch aufweist (Armbrust et al., 2004; Bowler et al., 2008; Traller et al., 2016). Die beschriebenen Diatomeen weisen alle eine Homologie im Lhcx1 auf, während sich die übrigen Lhcx-Kandidaten zwischen pennaten und zentrischen Diatomeen unterscheiden. Ein zwischen T. pseudonana und C. cryptica konserviertes Lhcx ist das Lhcx6_1, welches 2011 das erste Mal massenspektrometrisch an Photosystemen von T. pseudonana nachgewiesen wurde (Grouneva et al., 2011) und in weiteren Massenspektrometrie-gestützten Untersuchungen in beiden zentrischen Diatomeen an Photosynthese-Komplexen gefunden werden konnte (Gundermann et al., 2019; Calvaruso et al., 2020). Die Funktion des Lhcx6_1 ist bislang unklar.
Diese Arbeit konnte das Lhcx6_1 aus C. meneghiniana charakterisieren und Antikörper-gestützt genauer lokalisieren, eine nicht dynamische Phosphorylierung der Thylakoidmembran-Proteine der zentrischen Diatomee nachweisen und die molekularbiologische Zugänglichkeit des Organismus optimieren. qRT-PCR gestützte Expressions-Analysen konnten eine unerwartete Expression des lhcx6_1-Gens aufdecken. Dieses weist, im Vergleich zum Lhcx1, keine Starklicht induzierte Expression auf. Die Expression des Gens konnte nach wenigen Stunden Schwachlicht als maximal bestimmt werden, während sie im Starklicht abnimmt. Das Muster der Genexpression glich im Schwachlicht eher der des lhcf1-Gens. Die Sequenzierung des lhcx6_1 aus C. meneghiniana identifizierte eine verlängerte N-terminale Sequenz des Proteins, welche Homologie zu den minoren Antennen aus A. thaliana besitzt und Teil des reifen Proteins ist. Mittels eines C-terminalen Epitops wurde ein Antikörper gegen das Lhcx6_1 entworfen, welcher das Protein in C. meneghiniana spezifisch nachweisen kann. Die Isolation von Thylakoidmembranen der zentrischen Diatomee und weitergehende Aufreinigung mittels Saccharosedichtegradienten und lpBN-PAGE konnten die Lokalisation des Lhcx6_1 eingrenzen. Das Protein zeigt dabei keine Unterschiede in seiner Lokalisation nach Inkubation in Schwach-, Stark- und Fernrot-Licht und ist vorrangig mit Photosystem I assoziiert. In geringerer Menge konnte es zudem an Photosystem II nachgewiesen werden, während der immunologische Nachweis in Lichtsammelkomplexen (FCPs) minimale Mengen erbrachte. Ferner konnte eine Phosphorylierung des Lhcx6_1 an Threonin-Resten nachgewiesen werden, während die meisten anderen Thylakoidmembran-Proteine mittels Phospho-Serin Antikörper detektiert werden konnten. Weder die Phosphorylierung des Lhcx6_1, noch der anderen Thylakoidmembran-Proteine, zeigt eine dynamische Regulation, im Stile einer state-transition ähnlichen Kinase auf. Die Qualität des Umgebungslichts führte zu keinerlei Unterschieden in Phosphorylierungsmustern. Weiterführende Untersuchungen der Lhcx6_1-Phosphorylierung mittels Phos-tag PAGE identifizieren eine unphosphorylierte und eine einfach phosphorylierte Form des Proteins. Dabei kann an PSI ausschließlich die phosphorylierte Version des Lhcx6_1 gefunden werden. Im Zuge der Arbeit konnte zudem erstmalig die Elektroporation und Konjugation für C. meneghiniana als Transformations-Methoden etabliert werden, während das Protokoll für die biolistische Transformation optimiert wurde. Die Elektroporation erbrachte die höchste Transformationseffizienz. Molekularbiologische Unterfangen eines Lhcx6_1-Knockdowns mittels Antisense-RNA erzielten zunächst, aufgrund der starken Gegenregulation der Diatomee, keinen Erfolg...
Im Rahmen dieser Arbeit wurden sRNAs des halophilen Archaeons Haloferax volcanii hinsichtlich ihrer biologischen und ihrer regulatorischen Funktion charakterisiert.
Um einen Überblick über die biologischen Funktionen archaealer sRNAs zu erhalten, wurde eine umfassende phänotypische Charakterisierung von 27 sRNA-Deletionsmutanten im Vergleich zum Wildtyp ausgewertet. Im Zuge dieser phänotypischen Charakterisierungen wurden zehn verschiedene Wachstumsbedingungen, morphologische Unterschiede und Veränderungen in der Zellmotilität untersucht. Hierbei zeigten nahezu alle Deletionsmutanten unter mindestens einer der getesteten Bedingungen phänotypische Unterschiede. Durch den Verlust von sRNAs wurden sowohl sogenannte Gain-of-function als auch Loss-of-function Phänotypen beobachtet. Haloarchaeale sRNAs spielen eine wichtige Rolle beim Wachstum mit verschiedenen Salzkonzentrationen, mit verschiedenen Kohlenstoffquellen und beim Schwärmverhalten, sind jedoch weniger in die Adaptation an diverse Stressbedingungen involviert.
Zur näheren Charakterisierung der regulatorischen Funktion archaealer sRNAs wurden sRNA362, sRNAhtsf468 und sRNA479 mittels molekulargenetischer Methoden wie Northern Blot-Analyse und DNA-Mikroarray sowie bioinformatischer in silico-Analyse untersucht. Das Expressionslevel von sRNA362 konnte bestimmt und potentielle Zielgene für sRNAhtsf468 und sRNA479 identifiziert werden.
Eine vorangegangene Studie zeigte den Einfluss von sRNA30 unter Hitzestress und führte zur Identifikation differentiell produzierter Proteine in Abwesenheit der sRNA. In dieser Arbeit wurde mittels Northern Blot-Analysen die Expression der sRNA30 charakterisiert. Das Wachstum in An- und Abwesenheit von sRNA30 wurde bei 42°C und 51°C phänotypisch charakterisiert und der regulatorische Einfluss der sRNA auf die mRNA differentiell regulierter Proteine durch Northern Blot-Analyse überprüft. Eine Transkriptomanalyse mittels DNA-Mikroarray nach Hitzeschock-Induktion führte zur Identifikation differentiell regulierter Gene involviert in Transportprozesse, Metabolismus, Transkriptionsregulation und die Expression anderer sRNAs. Die differentielle Regulation des Proteoms nach Hitzeschockinduktion in An- und Abwesenheit von sRNA30 konnte bestätigt werden.
Desweiteren wurde in dieser Arbeit sRNA132 und deren phosphatabhängige Regulation der Ziel-mRNA HVO_A0477-80 näher charakterisiert. Eine Induktionskinetik nach Phosphatentzug bestätigte die Bedeutung von sRNA132 für die verstärkte Expression des Operons HVO_A0477-80 unter Phosphatmangel-Bedingungen und verwies auf die Existenz weiterer Regulationsmechanismen. Während vor und nach Phosphatentzug kein Unterschied bezüglich der Zellmorphologie von Wildtyp und Deletionsmutante zu erkennen war, führte das Wachstum mit einem starken Phosphatüberschuss von 5 mM zu einer Zellverlängerung der Deletionsmutante. Die Kompetition der nativen 3‘-UTR des Operons HVO_A0477-80 mit einer Vektor-kodierten artifiziellen 3‘-UTR legt eine Regulation über die Bindung von sRNA132 an die 3‘-UTR nahe. Der Transkriptomvergleich nach Phosphatentzug in An- und Abwesenheit von sRNA132 führte zur Identifikation des Phosphoregulons der sRNA. Zu diesem Phosphoregulon gehören unter anderem zwei Glycerinphosphat-Dehydrogenasen, Transkriptionsregulatoren, eine Polyphosphatkinase und eine Glycerolphosphodiesterase. Zudem waren die Transkriptlevel der beiden ABC-Transporter HVO_A0477-80 und HVO_2375-8 für anorganisches Phosphat und des Transporters HVO_B0292-5 für Glycerinaldehyd-3-Phosphat in Abwesenheit der sRNA verringert. Die beiden ABC-Transportsysteme für anorganisches Phosphat wurden im Rahmen dieser Arbeit deletiert und weiter charakterisiert. Es konnte gezeigt werden, dass das ABC-Transportsystem HVO_2375-8 bei geringen Phosphatkonzentrationen leicht induziert wird und das Transkriptlevel in Anwesenheit von sRNA132 erhöht ist. Wachstumsversuche der jeweiligen Deletionsmutante in direkter Konkurrenz mit dem Wildtyp zeigten, dass keiner der beiden ABC-Transporter den anderen vollständig ersetzen kann und der Wildtyp mit beiden intakten ABC-Transportern unter phosphatlimitierenden Bedingungen einen Wachstumsvorteil besitzt. In silico-Analysen der Promotorbereiche von sRNA und ABC-Transporter legen zudem die Existenz von P-Boxen nahe.
Der erste Teil der vorliegenden Arbeit beinhaltet die funktionelle Analyse von fünf Oberflächenproteinen von B. recurrentis die die Fähigkeit besitzen, die Aktivierung von humanen Komplement zu inhibieren und Borrelien vor Bakteriolyse zu schützen. Im zweiten Teil der Arbeit wurden zwei immunologische Testverfahren mit hoher Sensitivität sowie Spezifität entwickelt und mit zahlreichen Patientenseren evaluiert. Die entwickelten Tests könnten in Zukunft als zuverlässige Instrumente für eine gesicherte Diagnose von LRF eingesetzt werden.
Eine Sequenzanalyse führte zur Identifizierung eines neuen Proteinclusters, welches die fünf untersuchten Komplement-inhibierenden Proteine als „Cluster of Complement-targeting and Host-interacting Proteins“ oder „Chi-Gencluster“, zusammenfasst. Diese Oberflächenproteine wurden als ChiA, ChiB, ChiC, ChiD und ChiE bezeichnet. Weiterführende Sequenzanalysen ergaben, dass das Chi-Gencluster extrem hoch konserviert ist und sowohl in den ersten B. recurrentis-Isolaten aus den 1990er Jahren als auch in B. recurrentis-Stämmen nachgewiesen werden konnte, die 2015 aus Patienten isoliert wurden.
Durch funktionelle Analysen konnte gezeigt werden, dass alle fünf Chi-Proteine in der Lage sind den alternativen und terminalen Komplementweg zu inhibieren. Ebenfalls konnte für die Proteine ChiB, ChiD sowie ChiE nachgewiesen werden, dass die Interaktion mit der Komplementkomponente C5 dosisabhängig verläuft.
Die strukturelle Aufklärung des Proteins ChiB ermöglichte es Aminosäuren zu identifizieren, von denen angenommen wurde, dass sie für die Interaktion mit Komplement eine Rolle spielen könnten. Durch in vitro Mutagenese konnten insgesamt fünf verschiedene Varianten von ChiB generiert werden, die jedoch keine Veränderungen in ihrem Komplement-inhibierenden Potential gegenüber dem unveränderten ChiB-Protein aufwiesen. Weder in der Inhibition des alternativen oder des terminalen Komplementweges, noch in der Interaktion mit den untersuchten Komplementkomponenten C3b, C5 und C9.
Weiter konnte gezeigt werden, dass die lytische Aktivität von Humanserum durch Vorinkubation mit ChiB, ChiC, ChiD und ChiE drastisch reduziert werden konnte, sodass Serum-sensible Borrelienzellen in Gegenwart von Komplement überlebten. „Gain-of-function“ B. garinii-Transformanten, welche mit dem entsprechendem Chi-kodierenden Gen transformiert wurden, bestätigten die mit den gereinigten Proteinen erhobenen Ergebnisse.So konnte nachgewiesen werden, dass ChiB-, ChiC- oder ChiD-produzierende „Gain-of-function“ B. garinii Transformanten, nicht jedoch ChiE- produzierende Zellen, in der Lage waren einen Serum-resistenten Phänotypen auszubilden. Für Transformanten, die zwei-, drei- oder vier Chi-Proteine in verschiedenen Kombinationen gleichzeitig produzierten, konnte allerdings die Fähigkeit in Gegenwart von Humanserum zu überleben nicht bestätigt werden.
Molekulare Analysen mit verschiedenen RF-Borrelienstämmen führten zum Nachweis, dass die fünf Chi-kodierenden Gene bei allen Isolaten vorhanden sind und unter in vitro Bedingungen exprimiert werden. Im Gegensatz zu B. recurrentis PAbJ, ließ sich das HcpA kodierende Gen in B. duttonii LAI nicht nachweisen, jedoch alle dem Chi-Cluster zugehörigen Gene. Bei B. duttoni V fehlte das gesamte Chi-Cluster sowie die für CihC- und HcpA-kodierenden Gene. Durch eine Western Blot-Analyse konnte mit spezifischen Antikörpern bestätigt werden, dass die Proteine CihC, HcpA und ChiB in B. recurrentis A17 unter in vitro Bedingungen produziert wurden.
Im zweiten Teil der vorliegenden Arbeit wurden durch die Analyse der IgM- und IgG-Immunreaktivitäten der LRF-Patientenseren zwei Proteine identifiziert, CihC und GlpQ, die als potenzielle Antigene für die Serodiagnostik des LRF evaluiert wurden. Eine initiale Evaluierung des IgM Lineblot-Immmunoassays zeigte jedoch nur eine geringe Sensitivität für die beiden Antigene, während der IgG Lineblot-Immunoassay eine sehr hohe Sensitivität aufwies. Der ELISA hingegen zeigte bei einer Kombination beider Antigene sehr gute Sensitivitäten und Spezifitäten. Um die starke Hintergrundfärbung bei den Lineblot-Immunoassays, welche eine korrekte Bewertung der Reaktivitäten gegenüber CihC erheblich erschwerten, zu minimieren, wurde ein „Epitop-Mapping“ durchgeführt, um immunogene Regionen innerhalb des CihC-Proteins zu lokalisieren. Eine zweite Evaluierung mit dem immunreaktiven N-terminalen CihC-Fragment CihC-N führte zu einer deutlichen Verbesserung der IgG Lineblot-Immunoassays mit einer Sensitivität von 100 % und einer starken Reduktion der Hintergrundfärbung. Zusätzlich konnte die Sensitivität der IgM-ELISA deutlich verbessert werden. Die Verwendung von CihC-N führte beim IgG-ELISA zur Herabsetzung des Cut-off-Wertes und zu einer besseren Unterscheidung zwischen den positiven LRF-Seren und den verwendeten Kontrollseren. Im Rahmen dieser Arbeit konnten somit zwei serologische in vitro Diagnostika entwickelt werden, die als zuverlässige Point-of-Care-Diagnostik in klinischen Studien eingesetzt werden könnten. Zur Steigerung der Sensitivität des IgM-Lineblot-Immunoassays sollten allerdings weiterführende Untersuchungen mit weiteren immunreaktiven Antigenen, wie z.B. den Vmp-Proteinen von B. recurrentis, angestrebt werden.
Seit Jahrzehnten finden Kunststoffe aufgrund ihrer vorteilhaften Materialeigenschaften wie z. B. Formbarkeit und im Vergleich zu Glas oder Metall geringe Kosten und leichtes Gewicht, vermehrt Anwendung in allen Bereichen des täglichen Lebens. Einhergehend gelangen Kunststoffe zunehmend in die Umwelt, und reichern sich dort an. Besondere Aufmerksamkeit erfahren Partikel im Größenbereich von 1-1000 µm, sogenanntes Mikroplastik (MP), welches entweder direkt eingetragen wird oder in der Umwelt durch Fragmentierung größerer Plastikteile entsteht. Lange Zeit fokussierte sich die MP Forschung vorrangig auf aquatische Ökosysteme, obwohl Schätzungen davon ausgehen, dass die Kunststoffeinträge in terrestrischen Ökosystemen um ein Vielfaches höher sind. Besonders relevante Eintragspfade sind neben der unsachgemäßen Entsorgung von Abfällen, die landwirtschaftliche Klärschlamm- und Kompostdüngung und der zunehmende Einsatz von Mulchfolien, sowie der im Straßenverkehr generierte Reifenabrieb.
Für eine Abschätzung und Bewertung der MP-Belastung in Böden sind analytische Messungen von MP in Umweltproben essenziell, derzeit jedoch kaum existent, da MP im Boden partikulär und heterogen verteilt vorliegt und deshalb nur schwierig zu detektieren ist. Die für viele Analyseverfahren notwendige Isolation der Kunststoffpartikel, sowie die für repräsentative Messungen erforderliche Aufbereitung großer Probenvolumina stellen besondere analytische Herausforderungen mit großem Kosten- und Zeitaufwand dar. Chromatografische Verfahren finden wenig Anwendung, bieten aber vorteilhafte Voraussetzungen als Screeningverfahren für die Untersuchung von Böden, da sie nicht zwangsweise eine Partikelisolation verlangen, und zudem als Ergebnis einen Massegehalt liefern.
Diese Dissertation zeigt drei Anwendungen Chromatografie basierter Analyseverfahren zur Charakterisierung von MP im Boden. Erstmalig wurde die Thermo-Extraktion-Desorption-Gaschromatografie-Massenspektrometrie (TED-GC/MS) für die Analytik von Reifenabrieb in realen Umweltproben angewandt bei minimaler Probenaufbereitung. Dafür wurde ein Straßenrandboden umfangreich beprobt und analysiert, und es konnte neben der Eignung der analytischen Methode auch eine repräsentative Probenahmestrategie und räumliche Verteilungsmuster von Reifenabrieb im Boden demonstriert werden.
Der zweite Forschungsschwerpunkt lag auf der Methodenentwicklung und validierung eines neuartigen chemischen Extraktionsverfahrens für die Bestimmung von Polyestern in Bodenproben. Das Verfahren basiert auf der hydrolytischen Spaltung von Polyestern in ihre Monomere, deren flüssigchromatografische Abtrennung von Matrixbestandteilen und der Detektion mittels UV-Absorption. Das Verfahren verlangt neben der Extraktion keine weiteren Probenaufbereitungsschritte, ist für unterschiedliche Umweltmatrizes geeignet und ist damit z. B. prädestiniert für den Nachweis von Polyesterfasern auf gedüngten landwirtschaftlichen Flächen.
MP ist nicht nur aufgrund seiner Persistenz problematisch, sondern auch, weil es hydrophobe organische Schadstoffe aus dem Umweltmedium anreichern und transportieren kann. Maßgeblich für das Sorptionsverhalten sind die Materialeigenschaften des zugrunde liegenden Kunststoffes, welche Änderungen durch Alterungsprozessen unterliegen. Der Zusammenhang zwischen Materialalterung und Sorptionsverhalten wurde in früheren Studien kontrovers diskutiert und ist der dritte Teil dieser Arbeit. In einem Sorptionsexperiment konnte mittels Headspace-Gaschromatografie mit Flammenionisations-Detektion die Aufnahme von Aromaten an den Kunststoffen Polypropylen und Polystyrol quantifiziert werden. Die Kunststoffe wurden materialwissenschaftlich charakterisiert, teilweise künstlich gealtert und die daraus resultierende Änderungen der Materialeigenschaften sowie einhergehenden Änderungen des Sorptionsverhaltens erfasst. Dadurch war es möglich den Einfluss einzelner Materialeigenschaften auf das Sorptionsverhalten zu bewerten, Rückschlüsse auf zugrunde liegende Sorptionsmechanismen zu treffen und zu zeigen, dass in vorliegendem Experiment die Polymeralterung bei MP nicht zu einer erhöhten Schadstoffsorption führte.
Sleep is one of the fundamental requirements of all animals from nematodes to humans. It appears in different formats with shared features such as reduced muscle activities and reduced responsiveness to the environment. Despite the long history of sleep research, why a brain must be taken offline for a large portion of each day remains unknown. Moreover, sleep research focused on mammals and birds reveals two stages, rapid-eye-movement (REM) and slow-wave (SW) sleep, alternating during sleep. Whether these two stages of sleep exist in other vertebrates, particularly reptiles, is debated, as is the evolution of sleep in general.
Recordings from the brain of a lizard, the Australian bearded dragon Pogona vitticeps, indicate the presence of two electrophysiological states and provides a better picture of their sleep. Local field potential (LFP) signals, head velocity, eye movements, and heart rate during sleep match the pattern of REM and SW sleep in mammals. The SW and REM sleep patterns that we observed in lizards oscillated continuously for 6 to 10 hours with a period of 80-100 seconds when the ambient temperature was ~27°C. Lizard SW dynamics closely resemble those observed in rodent hippocampal CA1, yet originated from a brain area, the dorsal ventricular ridge (DVR), that does not correspond anatomically or transcriptomically to the mammalian hippocampus. This finding pushes back the probable evolution of these dynamics to the emergence of amniotes, at least 300 million years ago.
Unlike mammals and birds, REM and SW sleep in lizards occupy an almost equal amount of time during sleep. The clock-like alternation between these two sleep states was found initially by measuring the power modulation of two frequency bands, delta and beta. I recorded the full-band LFP and found an infra-slow oscillation (ISO) in the frequency range between 5 and 20 milli-Hz during sleep. The magnitude of ISO increased during sleep and decreased during both wakefulness and arousal during sleep. The up- and down-states of ISO were synchronized with the sleep state alternating rhythm but with a significant time lag dependent on the locations of the recording electrodes. Multi-site LFP recordings indicated that this ISO is a putative propagation wave sweeping extremely slowly, 30-67 µm/sec, from the posterior-dorsal pole to the anterior-ventral pole of the DVR.
Previous studies in other animals showed that brainstem areas such as the locus coeruleus, laterodorsal tegmentum, and periaqueductal gray are involved in sleep states regulation. It is sadly impossible to carry out in vivo recordings in the lizard brainstem without severely affecting them and their quality of life. I thus carried out ex vivo recordings in both DVR and brainstem. Pharmacological stimulation of the brainstem could reversibly silence one distinct EEG pattern characteristic of SW sleep, the sharp-wave and ripple complex, in DVR. An ISO could be recorded simultaneously in both DVR and brainstem. From data collected in both intact and split ex vivo brains, I concluded that there are independent ISO generators in at least two areas, the brainstem and the telencephalon. Their signals may normally be synchronized by long-range connections. The DVR ISO leads the brainstem ISO by ~29 sec. Optogenetic stimulation of brainstem neurons was able to disrupt the ISO in DVR reversibly.
In conclusion, the lizard brain offers a relatively simple model system to study sleep. Despite a diversity of results in different lizard species, my results revealed a number of new findings. Relevant for sleep research in general: 1) REM and SW sleep exist in a reptile. Since they also exist in birds and mammals, they probably existed in their common amniote ancestor, if not earlier. 2) REM and SW occupy equal amounts of time during sleep (50% duty cycle), a unique feature among all described sleep electrophysiological patterns, suggesting the possible existence of a simple central pattern generator of sleep, possibly ancestral. 3) I discovered the existence, in the local field potential, of an infra slow oscillation with extremely slow propagation, locked to the SW-REM alternating rhythm. The causes and mechanisms of this ISO remain to be understood. To my knowledge, the correlation between sleep states and a slow rhythm has only been reported in human scalp EEG recordings so far.
Climate and subsequent environmental changes are regarded as one driver of species evolution. Against this background the present study investigates the evolutionary history of the mammalian family Bovidae (Cetartiodactyla, Mammalia), today the most species-rich family of large herbivores on the African continent. Temporal and spatial patterns in that group’s evolution are the focus of the present study and were investigated using methods and data deriving from multiple disciplines (palaeontology, genetics, climatology, conservation biology). The results serve as a validation of macroevolutionary hypotheses of species evolution.
A major proportion of African mammalian fossils can be assigned to that family. Due to their morphological adaptations, bovid species are highly indicative of their habitats. Hence, bovids are of great importance for paleontology. However, a strong taphonomic bias is present in the fossil record of bovids, favoring large and arid- adapted species. Molecular phylogenies of extant species and species distribution modelling combined with climate reconstructions can help to overcome these limitations.
A molecular phylogeny, based on the cytochrome b gene of 136 bovid species served as basis for analysis of temporal patterns. Divergence events were dated using the relaxed molecular clock approach. The tree was time calibrated at 30 nodes using information inferred from the fossil record. Lineage-Through-Time plots and the respective statistical analyses reveal detailed temporal patterns in the evolutionary history of tribes and groups combining arid- and humid-adapted tribes. The resulting pattern shows three distinct phases. Phase 1 (P1) is dominated by speciation events within the humid group, while the second phase (P2) is marked by a dominance of speciation within the arid group. The switch in diversification rates (BDS) from P1 to P2 is dated to 2.8 million years ago. The third phase (P3) shows low diversification rates for all groups, starting around 1.4 million year ago and culminates in a significantly reduced diversification rate for the complete family at 0.8 million years ago. Both transitions are contemporaneous with global climate changes and turnover events in fossil faunal communities.
To investigate the impact of climate changes onto the habitat availability within the last 3 million years and its putative influence on diversification rates, the species distribution modeling method was applied. For 85 African species and subspecies the climate niches were established and grouped into 5 climate-groups based on their climate preferences. For each group the available habitat for the period before and after the BDS was calculated on continental scale using reconstructed climate scenarios. To evaluate the modeled habitat distributions, regional analyses were performed in test areas surrounding well studied fossil sites (Laetoli, Olduvai, Chiwondo Beds, Lothagam, Koobi Fora, West Turkana, Swartkrans, Sterkfontain und Toros-Menalla). Habitat profiles (HP) permitted the comparison of the model based habitat reconstruction with the interpretations of classic paleontological reconstruction. The validity of the habitat modeling has been shown in particular for East African test areas. The reconstructions for the northern and southern fossil sites does not support the modeled habitats in these areas. Yet, the method of habitat- profiling may serve as suitable tool for environmental reconstruction of areas lacking sufficient paleontological material. A comparison of habitat availability before and after the BDS on continental scale identified a significant loss of habitat for humid adapted groups (7-22%) and habitat gain for arid adapted groups (19-173%). The climatically intermediate group experiences a tremendous gain of habitat (3366%). The greatest environmental change was modeled for East Africa, initiated by a progressive regional aridification.
In addition to the distribution modeling for past climate conditions, the geographical distribution was modeled for the future, i.e. for climate scenarios representing the years 2050 and 2080 under a putative climate change scenario (global surface warming). It was shown that in particular the arid groups have to expect a remarkable loss of habitat (41-76%), while a gain of available habitat can be expected for the humid adapted groups (114-577%). The climatically intermediate group suffers the strongest habitat loss (85%). Regions with locally stable climate conditions were detected and may serve as potential refugia and are already today known as Africa’s hot spots of biodiversity.
The results show a positive correlation of high diversification rates and increasing habitat availability. None of the tested speciation hypotheses taken alone explains the observations (e.g., Turnover-pulse Hypothesis, Relay Model). A major element in these hypotheses is the passive fragmentation of populations induced by unfavorable climate changes. In contrast, the Periodic Model (Grubb 1999) considers natural, periodically recurring climate changes and moreover, the active dispersal of individuals and resulting founder events. I added the effect of a superimposed directed climate trend – like the progressive aridification since the late Pliocene in Africa – which leads to a bias in the proportion and probability towards leading edge effects. This Directed Periodic Model explains the patterns found in the evolution of Bovidae.
The combination of a molecular phylogeny and species distribution modeling, together with information inferred from the fossil record, reveals remarkable temporal and spatial patterns in the evolution of bovids, and helps overcome the limitations of the fossil record. The present study highlights the importance of active dispersal and founder populations in speciation processes. A point widely unattended in speciation hypotheses. The fully dated molecular phylogeny is the most densely sampled tree for the family Bovidae to date and may serve as a framework for a connection of present and future population studies, permitting the connection of medium-scale with long- term effects induced by climate and environmental changes.
Gravitropism is a fundamental process in plants that allows shoots to grow upward and roots to grow downward. Protein phosphorylation has been postulated to participate in the intricate signaling cascade of gravitropism. In order to elucidate the underlying mechanisms governing the gravitropic signaling and unearth novel protein constituents, an exhaustive investigation employing microgravity-induced phosphoproteomics was undertaken. The significantly phosphorylated proteins unraveled in this study can be effectively divided into two groups through clustering analysis. Furthermore, the elucidation of Gene Ontology (GO) enrichment analysis disclosed the conspicuous overrepresentation of these clustered phosphoproteins in cytoskeletal organization and in hormone-mediated responses intimately intertwined with the intricate phenomenon of gravitropism. Motif enrichment analysis unveiled the overrepresentation of [-pS-P-] and [-R-x-x-pS-] motifs. Notably, the [-pS-P-] motif has been suggested as the substrate for the Casein kinase II (CK II) and Cyclin-dependent kinase (CDK). Kinase-inhibitor assays confirmed the pivotal role played by CK II and CDK in root gravitropism. Mutant gravitropism assays validated the functional significance of identified phosphoproteins, with some mutants exhibiting altered bending kinetics using a custom-developed platform. The study also compared phosphoproteomics data from different platforms, revealing variations in the detected phosphopeptides and highlighting the impact of treatment differences. Furthermore, the involvement of TOR signaling in microgravity-induced phosphorylation changes was uncovered, expanding the understanding of plant gravitropism responses.
To fulfill the large-scale verification of interesting candidates from the phosphoproteomics study, a novel root and hypocotyl gravitropism phenotyping platform was developed. This platform integrated cost-effective hardware, including Raspberry Pi, a high-quality camera, an Arduino board, a rotation stage (obtained from Prof. Dr. Maik Böhmer), and programmable green light (modified by Sven Plath). In addition, through collaboration with a software developer, machine-learning-based software was developed for data analysis. This platform tested the gravitropic response of candidate mutants identified in the phosphoproteomics study. Furthermore, the capabilities of this platform were expanded to investigate tropisms in other species and organs. To find novel proteins that might act as partners of a key protein that is involved in gravitropism signaling, ALTERED RESPONSE TO GRAVITY 1 (ARG1), immunoprecipitation coupled with Mass Spectrometry (IP-MS) was performed and identified ARG1-LIKE1 (ARL1) as a potential interacting protein with ARG1. This interaction was further confirmed through in vivo pull-down assays and bimolecular fluorescence complementation assays. In addition, the interaction between ARG1 and HSP70-1 was also validated.
Overall, this thesis sheds light on the molecular components and signaling events involved in plant gravitropism. It contributes to existing knowledge and opens up new ways to investigate this fascinating area of plant biology.
The continuous conversion of natural wildlife habitats into agricultural areas, as well as the fragmentation of the last wildlife refuges, is increasing the interface between people and wildlife. When wildlife negatively impacts on people and vice versa, we speak about human-wildlife conflicts (HWCs). This definition includes losses on both sides and takes into consideration the rooting of most of these conflicts between different groups of interest, such as advocates for nature conservation and economic groups. The centres of highest biodiversity are located in developing countries, which are also characterized by poverty. In African and Asian countries, people living in the vicinity of national parks and other conservation areas mostly receive only little support through the government or conservation organisations. Especially for those people who are dependent on agriculture, damage to fields and harvests can have catastrophic consequences. If the species causing damage is protected by national or even international law, the farmer is not allowed to use lethal methods, but has to approach the authority in charge. If this agency, however, cannot offer appropriate support, resentment, anger or even hate develops, and the support for wildlife conservation activities declines. For this reason, HWCs were declared as one of the most important conservation topics today, being particularly relevant for large and threatened species such as the African and Asian elephant, hippopotamus and the greater one-horned rhino, as well as for large predators. Up to today, no general assessment scheme has been recommended for damage caused by protected wildlife species.
In my study, HWCs in Asia and Africa are compared, focussing on all herbivorous species identified which damaged crops. For the French NGO Awely, des animaux et des hommes, I developed a detailed assessment scheme suitable for all terrestrial ecosystems, and any type of HWCs and any species (Chapter 2). This HWC assessment scheme was used in four different study areas located in two African countries (South Luangwa/Zambia (SL), Tarangire/Tanzania (TA)) and two Asian countries (Bardia/Nepal (BA) and Manas/India (MA)). This scheme ran for six consecutive years (2009 to 2014) for Zambia, Nepal and India and two years (2010 to 2011) for Tanzania. To carry out the assessments, I trained local HWC officers (Awely Red Caps) to assess HWCs by field observations (measurement of damage, identification of species through signs of presence, landscape attributes etc.) and interviews with aggrieved parties (socio economic data). Results of this assessment are presented in Chapters 2-4.
To determine whether elephants prefer or avoid specific crop species, two field experiments were carried out, one in SL and one in BA (Chapter 5 and 6). For this, two test plots were set up and damage by elephants (and other herbivores) were quantified.
Within this doctoral thesis, 3306 damage events of 7408 aggrieved parties were analysed. In three out of the four study areas (SL, BA, MA), elephants caused the highest number of damage events compared to all other wildlife species, however, in TA, most fields were damaged by zebra. Furthermore, the greater one-horned rhino, hippopotamus, wild boar, bushpig, deer and antelope, as well as primates, caused damage to fields and harvests. Damage to houses and other property were nearly exclusively caused by elephants.
With this doctoral thesis I was able to show that season, crop availability, type and the phenological stage of the crop played an important role for crop damaging behavior of herbivores (Chapter 2). Elephants especially damaged rice, maize and wheat and preferred all crop types in a mature stage of growth. In contrast, rhinos preferred wheat to rice and similar to antelope and deer, they preferred crops at earlier stages of growth, before ripening. Crop damage by wildlife species varied strongly in size; most damages fell below 40% of the total harvest per farmer, but in several cases (3 to 8% depending on the study area), harvests were completely destroyed. Interestingly, during times of low nutritional availability in the natural habitat (dry season), crop damages in all four study areas were significantly less than during other seasons.
In all four study areas, crop protection strategies, such as active guarding in the fields, chasing wildlife with noise or fire torches or erecting barriers, were used. In some cases protection strategies were combined. Analysis of data revealed that traditional protection strategies did not reduce the costs of damage (Chapter 3). In some cases, costs of damage, on protected fields were even higher than for unprotected fields. Only in MA did strategic and cohesive guarding significantly reduce crop damage by wildlife species.
Besides damage in the fields, elephants also caused damage to properties in the villages. In search for stored staple crops, they damaged houses, grain stores and kitchens. Such damage was analysed in three study areas (SL, BA, MA) (Chapter 4). Although property damage occurred less frequently compared to crop damage in the fields, the mean cost of this damage was found to be double in BA/MA and four times higher in SL, compared to the costs of crop damage in the fields. It is further remarkable that property damage significantly increased towards the dry season, when the harvest was brought into the villages.
The findings of this study underpin the assumption that wildlife herbivores, especially elephants, are lured to fields and crops because the highly nutritional food (crop) being readily available. Traditional crop protection is cost and labour intensive and does not reduce the costs of damage. For this reason, crop types, which are thought to be not consumed by elephants were systematically tested on their attractiveness in field experiments in SL and BA (Chapter 5 and 6). In SL, lemon grass, ginger and garlic were proven to be less attractive to African elephants than maize and in BA, basil, turmeric, chamomile, coriander, mint, citronella and lemon grass were found to be less attractive to Asian elephants than rice.
The results of this doctoral thesis are relevant for the management of wildlife conservation as they can lead to new approaches to the mitigation of HWCs in African and Asian countries. Finally, specific needs for more scientific research in this field have been identified.
The fruit fly Drosophila melanogaster is one of the most important biological model organisms, but only the comparative approach with closely related species provides insights into the evolutionary diversification of insects. Of particular interest is the live imaging of fluorophores in developing embryos. It provides data for the analysis and comparison of the threedimensional morphogenesis as a function of time. However, for all species apart from Drosophila, for example the red flour beetle Tribolium castaneum, essentially no established standard operation procedures are available and the pool of data and resources is sparse. The goal of my PhD project was to address these limitations. I was able to accomplish the following milestones:
- Development of the hemisphere and cobweb mounting methods for the non-invasive imaging of Tribolium embryos in light sheet-based fluorescence microscopes and characterization of most crucial embryogenetic events.
- Comprehensive documentation of methods as protocols that describe (i) beetle rearing in the laboratory, (ii) preparation of embryos, (ii) calibration of light sheet-based fluorescence microscopes, (iv) recording over several days, (v) embryo retrieval as a quality control as well as (vi) data processing.
- Adaption of the methods to record and analyze embryonic morphogenesis of the Mediterranean fruit fly Ceratitis capitata and the two-spotted cricket Gryllus bimaculatus as well as integration of the data into an evolutionary context.
- Further development of the hemisphere method to allow the bead-based / landmark-based registration and fusion of three-dimensional images acquired along multiple directions to compensate the shadowing effect.
- Development of the BugCube, a web-based computer program that allows to share image data, which was recorded by using light sheet-based fluorescence microscopy, with colleagues.
- Invention and experimental proof-of-principle of the (i) AGameOfClones vector concept that creates homozygous transgenic insect lines systematically. Additionally, partial proof-of-principle of the (ii) AClashOfStrings vector concept that creates double homozygous transgenic insect lines systematically, as well as preliminary evaluation of the (iii) AStormOfRecords vector concept that creates triple homozygous transgenic insect lines systematically.
- Creation and performance screening of more than fifty transgenic Tribolium lines for the long-term imaging of embryogenesis in fluorescence microscopes, including the first Lifeact and histone subunit-based lines.
My primary results contribute significantly to the advanced fluorescence imaging approaches of insect species beyond Drosophila. The image data can be used to compare different strategies of embryonic morphogenesis and thus to interpret the respective phylogenetic context. My technological developments extend the methodological arsenal for insect model organisms considerably.
Within my perspective, I emphasize the importance of non-invasive long-term fluorescence live imaging to establish speciesspecific morphogenetic standards, discuss the feasibly of a morphologic ontology on the cellular level, suggest the ‘nested linearly decreasing phylogenetic relationship’ approach for evolutionary developmental biology, propose the live imaging of species hybrids to investigate speciation and finally outline how light sheet-based fluorescence microscopy contributes to the transition from on-demand to systematic data acquisition in developmental biology.
During my PhD project, I wrote a total of ten manuscripts, six of which were already published in peer-reviewed scientific journals. Additionally, I supervised four Master and two Bachelor projects whose scientific questions were inspired by the topic of my PhD work.
Alternative splicing (AS) is a co- or post-transcriptional process by which one gene gives rise to multiple isoforms. This ‘split and combine’ step multiplies eukaryotic proteome diversity several fold and is implicated in several diseases given its pervasive impact. Control of alternative splicing is brought about by cis-regulatory elements, such as RNA sequence and structure, which recruit trans-acting RNA-binding proteins (RBPs). Although several of these interactions are already described in detail, we lack a comprehensive understanding of the regulatory code that underlies a splicing decision.
Here, we have established a high-throughput screen to comprehensively identify and characterise cis-regulatory elements that control a specific splicing decision. A cancer-relevant splicing event in proto-oncogene RON was picked as a minigene prototype for initialising the screening approach. Then, we transfected a library of thousands of randomly mutagenised minigene variants as a pool into human cells, and subsequently quantified the spliced isoforms by RNA sequencing. Importantly, we used a barcode sequence to tag the minigene variants and thereby linked mutations to their corresponding spliced products. By using a linear regression-based modelling approach, we were able to determine the effects of single mutations on RON AS. In total, more than 700 mutations were found to significantly affect the splicing regulation of the RON alternative exon. In addition, mutation effects quantified from the screening approach correlate with RON alternative splicing in cancer patients. We discovered numerous previously unknown cis-regulatory elements in both introns and exons, and found that the RBP heterogeneous nuclear ribonucleoprotein H (HNRNPH) extensively regulates RON AS at multiple levels in both cell lines and cancer. Furthermore, the large number of RBPs involved in the process, point to a complex splicing regulatory network involved in the control of RON splicing. iCLIP and synergy analysis between mutations and HNRNPH knockdown data pinpointed the most relevant HNRNPH binding sites across RON. Finally, cooperative HNRNPH binding was shown to mediate a splicing switch of RON alternative exon. In summary, our results provide an unprecedented view on the complexity of splicing regulation of an alternative exon. The novel screening approach introduces a tool to study the relationship of RNA sequence variants along with trans-acting regulators to their impact on the splicing outcome, offering insights on alternative splicing regulation and the relevance of mutations in human disease.
Most cellular processes are regulated by RNA-binding proteins (RBPs). These RBPs usually use defined binding sites to recognize and directly interact with their target RNA molecule. Individual-nucleotide resolution UV crosslinking and immunoprecipitation (iCLIP) experiments are an important tool to de- scribe such interactions in cell cultures in-vivo. This experimental protocol yields millions of individual sequencing reads from which the binding spec- trum of the RBP under study can be deduced. In this PhD thesis I studied how RNA processing is driven from RBP binding by analyzing iCLIP-derived sequencing datasets.
First, I described a complete data analysis pipeline to detect RBP binding sites from iCLIP sequencing reads. This workflow covers all essential process- ing steps, from the first quality control to the final annotation of binding sites. I described the accurate integration of biological iCLIP replicates to boost the initial peak calling step while ensuring high specificity through replicate re- producibility analysis. Further I proposed a routine to level binding site width to streamline downstream analysis processes. This was exemplified in the re- analysis of the binding spectrum of the U2 small nuclear RNA auxiliary factor 2 (U2AF2, U2AF65). I recaptured the known dominance of U2AF65 to bind to intronic sequences of protein-coding genes, where it likely recognizes the polypyrimidine tract as part of the core spliceosome machinery.
In the second part of my thesis, I analyzed the binding spectrum of the serine and arginine rich splicing factor 6 (SRSF6) in the context of diabetes. In pancreatic beta-cells, the expression of SRSF6 is regulated by the transcription factor GLIS3, which encodes for a diabetes susceptibility gene. It is known that SRSF6 promotes beta-cell death through the splicing dysregulation of genes essential to beta-cell function and survival. However, the exact mechanism of how these RNAs are targeted by SRSF6 remains poorly understood. Here, I applied the defined iCLIP processing pipeline to describe the binding landscape of the splicing factor SRSF6 in the human pancreatic beta-cell line EndoC-H1. The initial binding sites definition revealed a predominant binding to coding sequences (CDS) of protein-coding genes. This was followed up by extensive motif analysis which revealed a so far, in human, unknown purine-rich binding motif. SRSF6 seemed to specifically recognize repetitions of the triplet GAA. I also showed that the number of contiguous triplets correlated with increasing binding site strength. I further integrated RNA-sequencing data from the same cell type, with SRSF6 in KD and in basal conditions, to analyze SRSF6- related splicing changes. I showed that the exact positioning of SRSF6 on alternatively spliced exons regulates the produced transcript isoforms. This mechanism seemed to control exons in several known susceptibility genes for diabetes.
In summary, in my PhD thesis, I presented a comprehensive workflow for the processing of iCLIP-derived sequencing data. I applied this pipeline on a dataset from pancreatic beta-cells to unveil the impact of SRSF6-mediated splicing changes. Thus, my analysis provides novel insights into the regulation of diabetes susceptibility genes.
Die Funktion der äußeren Haarsinneszellen geht weit über die normale Rezeptoreigenschaft der Kategorie Mechanorezeptor hinaus. Äußere Haarzellen mit ihrer reichhaltigen efferenten Innervierung sind nicht nur für die sensorische Aufnahme mechanischer Bewegung zuständig, sondern ermöglichen aufgrund ihrer motorischen Funktionen die mechanische Verstärkung der Wanderwelle in der Cochlea. Äußere Haarzellen sind eine maßgebliche Komponente des ´cochleären Verstärkers` und ihr Ausfall führt zur Schwerhörigkeit. Beiprodukte des cochleä-ren Verstärkers sind otoakustische Emissionen, deren Messung Aufschluss über aktive mechanische Prozesse im Innenohr gibt.
Die äußeren Haarsinneszellen bilden Synapsen mit dem olivo-cochleären efferenten System, welches im Zentrum der vorliegenden Untersuchung steht. Es vermittelt den Einfluss des Zentralnervensystems auf das Corti-Organ des Innenohrs. Über die akustische Reizung des olivo-cochleären Reflexbogens ist man in der Lage, das efferente System zu aktivieren und gleichzeitig die Antworteigenschaften der Cochlea zu verändern. Efferente Modulationen des cochleären Verstärkers können sich z. B. in einer Veränderung des Emissionspegels bemerk-bar machen. Die Fledermausspezies Carollia perspicillata ist aufgrund ihres Echoortungs-systems mit einem sehr sensitiven und hochauflösenden Hörvermögen ausgestattet und eignet sich hervorragend als Modelltier in der Hörforschung, insbesondere auch deshalb, da oto-akustische Emissionen sehr gut messbar sind.
Das efferente System von C. perspicillata wurde in dieser Untersuchung durch akustische Stimulation der kontralateralen Cochlea angeregt. Die Stimuli, die nicht nur in ihrem Pegel sondern auch in ihrer Bandbreite und in der Mittelfrequenz in Relation zu den ipsilateralen Stimulusfrequenzen variierten, beeinflussten dabei die Generierung der otoakustischen Emis-sionen (DPOAE, engl: distortion product otoacoustic emissions) im ipsilateralen Ohr: akustische Stimulation der kontralateralen Cochlea bewirkte zuverlässig eine Änderung der DPOAE- Amplitude im kontralateralen Ohr. Vor allem eine Suppression des cochleären Verstärkers in Form von DPOAE-Pegelverminderungen wurde beobachtet. Die supprimieren-den Effekte erreichten trotz leiser bis moderater kontralateraler Rauschpegel (bis maximal 54 dB SPL) Werte von bis zu 14, 17.1 und 13.9 dB SPL (bei f2 = 20, 40 und 60 kHz und effek-tivstem kontralateralen Rauschstimulus) und waren damit deutlich größer als in vorangegang-enen Studien an anderen Spezies. Die DPOAE-Pegelverminderungen waren positiv mit dem x Pegel der kontralateralen akustischen Stimulation, ebenso wie seiner Bandbreite und der Mittelfrequenzen in Relation zu den ipsilateralen Stimulusfrequenzen korreliert. Es gab keinen absoluten Frequenzbereich, in dem die efferenten Effekte am größten gewesen wären. Vielmehr traten maximale Effekte immer durch etwas oberhalb der ipsilateralen Stimulusfre-quenzen gelegene kontralaterale Rauschstimuli auf. Die Effekte waren auch abhängig von der Bandbreite des kontralateralen Rauschstimulus und maximal bei einer relativen Bandbreite von 1.5 Oktaven. Die Verschiebung des efferenten Effekts hin zu hohen Frequenzen und die Bandbreitenabhängigkeit sind vereinbar mit den anatomischen Eigenschaften der Projektio-nen der medialen olivo-cochleären Efferenzen in der Säugetiercochlea. Kontralaterale akusti-sche Reizung bewirkte auch eine Verschiebung der Wachstumsfunktionen der 2f1-f2 -DPOAE in einen unsensitiven Bereich und außerdem eine Verformung der Wachstumsfunktion. Bei-des könnte durch Beeinträchtigung des cochleären Verstärkers verursacht sein. Eine Beteili-gung des Mittelohrmuskels an den Effekten kann nahezu ausgeschlossen werden und die beobachteten Effekte sind höchstwahrscheinlich dem olivo-cochleären System zuzuschreiben.
Funktionell ist denkbar, dass bei C. perspicillata das mediale olivo-cochleäre System im Kontext einer Frequenzverschärfung bei der cochleären Verstärkung der Basilarmembranbe-wegung aktiv wird. Aus diesem Grund wurden ipsilateral sogenannte DPOAE-Suppressions- Abstimmkurven gemessen, welche die mechanische Abstimmschärfe im Innenohr beschrei-ben. Während und nach kontralateraler Reizung kam es zu Veränderungen der Abstimmkur-ven. Signifikante Effekte konnten allerdings nicht festgestellt werden, da die Veränderungen der Suppressions-Abstimmkurven variabel und schlecht kategorisierbar war.
Die vorliegenden Ergebnisse unterstützen weit verbreitete Hypothesen zur Funktion der medialen olivo-cochleären Effernzen in Bezug auf mechanische Suppression, Verbesserung des cochleären Signal-Rauschverhältnisses und einer generellen frequenzspezifischen Wirkung.
Deciphering the ecological functions of fungal root endophytes based on their natural occurrence
(2017)
Plants are colonized by a large diversity of fungi, some residing on the surface and others penetrating the plant tissues, the latter referred to as fungal endophytes (endon Gr., within; phyton, plant; de Bary 1879). Despite the saprotrophic potential of fungal endophytes, they are not found to cause visible disease symptoms to the host. Plants are colonized simultaneously by various fungal species, which form rich and diverse endophytic assemblages. Although it is hypothesized that fungal endophytes contribute to the fitness of their hosts and to the functioning of ecosystems, the ecological function of fungal endophytic assemblages remains cryptic. The aims of this doctoral thesis are to gain insight to the ecological functions of root fungal endophytes, by deciphering their roles in ecosystems based on their natural occurrence and the structure of their assemblages. The thesis focuses on studying the diversity and structure of the endophytic mycobiome within roots of two annual and widespread plant hosts Microthlapsi perfoliatum and M. erraticum (Brassicaceae) in several locations across northern Mediterranean and central Europe. The thesis is composed by six Chapters, with a primary focus on Chapter 1, 2 and 3.
Chapter 1 (Glynou et al., 2016) aimed at characterizing the diversity of fungal endophytes in roots at a continental scale and at assessing the factors affecting the structure of endophytic assemblages with the use of cultivation-based methods. For that, root samples were collected from 52 plant populations, along with a collection of soil, bioclimatic, geographic and host data. Cultivation of surface-sterilized root samples on culture media and isolation of fungal colonies in pure culture generated 1,998 fungal colonies. Grouping of sequences into Operational Taxonomic Units (OTUs), based on the 97% similarity of the isolates’ rDNA Internal Transcribed Spacer (ITS) sequence, generated in total 296 OTUs, representing taxa mostly within the phylum Ascomycota with a minor representation of Basidiomycota. Endophytic assemblages were mostly correlated with variation in bioclimatic conditions. Interestingly, despite the large diversity revealed, the assemblages were dominated by only six OTUs related to the orders Hypocreales, Pleosporales and Helotiales, which had a widespread distribution across populations but with some following patterns of ecological preferences.
Chapter 2 aimed at characterizing the uncultivable fraction of the root fungal endophytic diversity, which was not possible to capture in Chapter 1. High-throughput sequencing via the
Illumina Miseq platform was implemented in 43 of the 52 original populations and mostly in the same root samples. In comparison with the cultivation-based approach, the HTS managed to cover the overall diversity within samples. It revealed a large non-cultivated endophytic diversity but the same cultivable fungi dominated assemblages. Moreover, the endophytic diversity was grouped mostly within fungal orders with demonstrated ability to grow in culture and taxonomically related groups were found to have divergent ecological preferences.
The genetic identity of the most abundant OTUs was further investigated in Chapter 3 (Glynou et al., 2017), aiming to unravel genotypic variability, which was possibly overlooked due to the use of lTS, as a universal genetic marker, and could explain their high abundance and widespread distribution. Multi-locus gene sequencing and AFLP profiling for the five most abundant OTUs suggested a low within-OTU genetic variability and show that these fungi have ubiquitous distribution and are not limited by environmental conditions within the ecological ranges of the study. A selection of endophytes frequently isolated in Chapter 1 was functionally characterized in Chapter 4 (Kia et al., 2017) based on the isolates’ traits and interactions with plants. In Chapter 5 (Cheikh-Ali et al., 2015) fungal cultures of Exophiala sp. with differential colony structure where investigated for their production of secondary metabolites. Moreover, Chapter 6 (Maciá-Vicente et al., 2016) comprises the description of the new species Exophiala radicis based on morphological and molecular characteristics.
Compilation of all results shows that the fungal endophytic diversity in roots of Microthlaspi spp. is high but few widespread OTUs dominate the assemblages, and have unlimited dispersal ability. These fungi seem also to have a wide niche breadth and are not affected by environmental filtering. The findings indicate that the local environment but also processes of competitive exclusion determine the structure of endophytic assemblages. In addition, the fungal endophytes associated with Microthlapsi spp. likely have saprotrophic activity however the interactions with plants are likely context-dependent. Further research is needed to assess the biotic interactions among endophytes and their effect on the structure of fungal endophytic assemblages. Ultimately, the findings of this thesis are useful to shed light on the processes underlying the structure of endophytic assemblages. They also upraise the need to describe diversity by combining genetic, metabolic and physiological data, in order to disentangle the elusive ecological roles of the endophytic mycobiome.
Der DNA-Translokator von T. thermophilus HB27, ebenso wie Typ-IV-Pili (T4P), sind Multiproteinkomplexe, die die Membranen und das Periplasma durchspannen. Sie sind ähnlich aufgebaut und enthalten identische Proteine. Der DNA-Translokator vermittelt Transport von DNA in das Zellinnere während der natürlichen Transformation. T4P sind filamentöse Zellorganellen, die an der inneren Membran assembliert werden und bis zu mehrere Mikrometer aus der Zelle hinausragen. Sie dienen der Anhaftung und Fortbewegung der Zellen auf Oberflächen.
Das Ziel dieser Arbeit war es, die Funktionen einzelner Komponenten der Komplexe und ihrer Proteindomänen bei der natürlichen Transformation, der T4P-Assemblierung und den durch T4P vermittelten Funktionen Adhäsion und „twitching motility“ aufzuklären.
Es sind neun Proteine bekannt, die eine duale Rolle als Komponenten des DNA-Translokators und des T4P spielen. Eines dieser Proteine ist die Assemblierungs-ATPase PilF, die Hexamere bildet. Diese cytoplasmatischen ATPase-Komplexe stellen die Energie für die Assemblierung der T4P bereit, ebenso wie für die Aufnahme freier DNA. Es ist jedoch bisher nicht geklärt, wie die durch PilF bereitgestellte Energie auf die anderen Komponenten des DNA-Translokators/T4P übertragen wird.
In dieser Arbeit konnte gezeigt werden, dass PilF an das cytoplasmatische Protein PilM des T4P und DNA-Translokators bindet. Zudem konnten Proteinkomplexe bestehend aus den Proteinen PilM, PilN und PilO heterolog produziert und aus Zellmembranen koisoliert werden. PilF interagierte mit diesen PilMNO-Komplexen via PilM. Diese Interaktionen führt zur Stimulierung der ATPase-Aktivität von PilF. Dies deutet an, dass PilM ein Kupplungsprotein ist, welches die Assemblierungs-ATPase PilF physisch und funktionell mit dem T4P/DNA-Translokator über den PilMNO-Komplex verbindet.
Neben PilF standen Präpiline von T. thermophilus im Fokus dieser Arbeit. Präpiline sind Vorläuferproteine, die zu Pilinen prozessiert werden und als solche dann die Untereinheiten der Pilus-Strukturen bilden.
Zusammenfassend konnten die Rollen einzelner Präpilin-ähnlicher Proteine bei T4P-assoziierten Funktionen geklärt werden und es konnten erste Analysen zur Charakterisierung des weitestgehend unbekannten Proteins ComZ durchgeführt werden. Desweiteren liefert diese Arbeit Hinweise darauf, dass die membranassoziierten Proteine PilM, PilN und PilO Kupplungsproteine sind, die PilF mit den periplasmatischen Komponenten des T4P/DNA-Translokators verbinden und dadurch die ATPase-Aktivität von PilF stimulieren. Die Rollen einzelner Proteindomänen von PilF und PilM bei der Protein-Protein-Interaktion und der Bindung von Liganden wurden aufgeklärt, sowie ihre Funktionen bei den T4P-vermittelten Funktionen und der natürlichen Transformation.
Die Psoriasis vulgaris (PsV) ist eine immunvermittelte entzündliche Erkrankung der Haut mit einer Prävalenzrate von 2-3 %, sodass etwa zwei Millionen Menschen in Deutschland an dieser erkrankt sind. Charakteristisch für die PsV sind veränderte Hautareale (Plaques), die im Rahmen der der entzündungsbedingten Durchblutungssteigerung gerötet erscheinen und eine silbrig-weiße Schuppung als Resultat einer vermehrten Abschilferung abgestorbener Keratinozyten aus der hyperproliferativen Epidermis aufweisen.
In dieser Arbeit wurde die Bedeutung des proinflammatorischen Zytokins granulocyte-macrophage colony-stimulating factor (GM-CSF) in der Pathogenese einer modellhaften Experimentalerkrankung der PsV untersucht. GM-CSF wird unter anderem von Interleukin (IL-) 17 produzierenden T-Helferzellen (Th17-Zellen) sezerniert, deren pathogenetische Bedeutung für die PsV gut etabliert ist. Die pathogene Wirkung von GM-CSF als Effektorzytokin konnte bereits in Tiermodellen anderer Th17-vermittelter Autoimmunerkrankungen wie der multiplen Sklerose und der rheumatoiden Arthritis (RA) gezeigt und die therapeutische Wirkung von GM-CSF-neutralisierenden Antikörpern in klinischen Studien an RA-Patienten demonstriert werden.
Das in dieser Arbeit angewendete murine Krankheitsmodell der Imiquimod (IMQ-) induzierten psoriasiformen Dermatitis wird durch die topische Anwendung des Medikaments Aldara®, dessen Wirkstoff IMQ ist, ausgelöst und führt zu einer Entzündung der Haut, die in vielen Aspekten dem humanen Krankheitsbild einer PsV ähnelt. Die pathogenetische Bedeutung von GM-CSF für die IMQ-induzierte psoriasiforme Dermatitis wurde über zwei unterschiedliche experimentelle Ansätze untersucht. So wurde GM-CSF in C57Bl/6J Mäusen mittels eines spezifischen, rekombinanten murinen Antikörpers in der Induktionsphase des Krankheitsmodells neutralisiert und zeitgleich der modifizierte Psoriasis Area Severity Index (PASI-)Score als Parameter des Schweregrades der klinischen Manifestationen ermittelt. Des Weiteren wurde am Versuchsende die Infiltration von Immunzellen in das entzündete Gewebeareal untersucht. Diese Ergebnisse wurden mit den Daten einer Behandlungsgruppe, nach Applikation eines IgG-Isotyp identischen Kontrollantikörpers verglichen. Dabei zeigte die Neutralisierung des Zytokins einen therapeutischen Effekt, der in einem signifikant niedrigeren PASI-Score, einer verringerten Tnfa mRNA Expression und einer reduzierten Infiltration mit neutrophilen Granulozyten resultierte.
Parallel zu diesen Versuchen wurde die Modellerkrankung auch in einer GM-CSF-defizienten C57Bl/6J Mauslinien (GM-CSF-/-) studiert. Die funktionelle Inaktivität des GM-CSF-kodierenden Csf2 Gens wurde 1994 durch gezielte genetische Manipulation etabliert. Unter den experimentellen Bedingungen war der Schweregrad der IMQ-induzierten psoriasiformen Dermatitis in GM-CSF-/- Mäusen nicht signifikant different von dem der wildtypischen (Wt) Mäuse und zeigte somit im Gegensatz zu den Ergebnissen aus den Versuchsreihen der Antikörper vermittelten Zytokinneutralisierung keinen offensichtlichen Hinweis auf eine GM-CSF-Abhängigkeit. In den GM-CSF-defizienten Tieren war jedoch nach IMQ-Induktion eine signifikant höhere Il6 und Il22 mRNA Expression am Entzündungsort im Vergleich zu den Wt Mäusen auffällig. Aufgrund dieser Ergebnisse wurde der Phänotyp der GM-CSF-defizienten Mäuse genauer untersucht und eine vermehrte Anzahl plasmazytoider dendritischen Zellen (pDCs) in Milz und Lymphknoten nachgewiesen. Diese Zellen werden im Rahmen ihrer Differenzierung aus Vorläuferzellen durch GM-CSF suppressiv reguliert und sind sowohl in die Entwicklung der PsV im Menschen als auch die Pathogenese der IMQ-induzierten psoriasiformen Dermatitis involviert. Aufgrund des in den sekundären lymphatischen Organen GM-CSF-defizienter Mäuse expandierten pDC-Kompartiments wurde die Beteiligung dieser Zellen in der Initiationsphase des Modells analysiert. Im Vergleich mit GM-CSF-suffizienten C57Bl/6J Mäusen weisen die Tiere der GM-CSF-defizienten Mauslinie zu diesen Zeitpunkten eine verstärkte Infiltration von pDCs in die Haut auf. Für pDCs ist bekannt, dass sie über die Produktion von IL-6 und TNF die Effektorzelldifferenzierung aktivierter, naiver T-Lymphozyten in Richtung Th22-Zellen polarisieren können. Dieser Mechanismus liefert ein hypothetisches Konzept, das die Ergebnisse zur gesteigerten IL-6-Produktion und Differenzierung IL-22-produzierender T-Zellen in IMQ-behandelten GM-CSF-/- Mäusen im Kontext der nachweisbaren Expansion von pDCs, erklären könnte. Dieser in den GM-CSF-/- Mäusen nachweisbare alternative Pathogenesemechanismus, ist offenbar geeignet die proinflammatorische Wirkung des genetisch fehlenden Zytokins zu kompensieren, aber hinsichtlich seiner Etablierung über ein verändertes pDC-Kompartiment von Dauer und Ausmaß der GM-CSF-Defizienz abhängig. So erklärt sich, warum die zeitlich limitierte Antikörper vermittelte GM-CSF-Neutralisierung in GM-CSF-suffizienten-Mäusen zu keiner pDC-Expansion und Steigerung von IL-6 und IL-22 Expression nach IMQ-Induktion führt.
Die GM-CSF-Neutralisierung durch einen rekombinanten murinen Antikörper reduziert deutlich die Krankheitsschwere der IMQ-induzierten psoriasiformen Dermatitis und belegt damit das therapeutische Potenzial dieses Therapieansatzes für die Humanerkrankung der PsV. Die unter angeborener GM-CSF-Defizienz in den Studien darüber hinaus aufgedeckten Veränderungen des pDC-Kompartiments sind von potenzieller Relevanz für zukünftige therapeutische Anwendungen dieses Prinzips, da unter einer dauerhaften GM-CSF-Neutralisierung mit therapeutischen Antikörpern ein Monitoring dieser Zellpopulation empfehlenswert erscheint z.B. über veränderte Interferonsignaturen durch pDCs, um mögliche Wirkverluste, aber auch unerwünschte Effekte zu erkennen.
In dieser Arbeit wurde der Hefepilz Xanthophyllomyces dendrorhous als vielseitige biotechnologische Plattform für die Produktion von Carotinoiden verwendet. Durch genetische Modifikationen der Carotinoidbiosynthese wurde ein Astaxanthin-Hochproduzent zur Akkumulation des farblosen Phytoens, das die menschliche Haut vor der schädlichen Wirkung der UV-Strahlung schützt und des gelben Zeaxanthins, das zur Förderung und Erhalt der Sehfähigkeit beiträgt, befähigt. Zur Generierung eines Phytoen-Hochproduzenten wurde das Gen crtI (Phytoen-Desaturase) inaktiviert und der Phytoengehalt durch Überexpression der Gene HMGR, crtE und crtYB gesteigert. Die Generierung eines Zeaxanthin-Hochproduzenten beinhaltete die Inaktivierung des Gens asy (Astaxanthin-Synthase) und die heterologe Expression einer bakteriellen ß-Carotin-Hydroxylase CrtZoXd.
Die Inaktivierung der Gene erfolgte mit spezifischen Knock-Out-Konstrukten, die mittels homologer Rekombination in crtI oder asy integrierten. Nachdem die Transgene auf Vektoren mit verschiedenen Antibiotikaresistenzen kloniert wurden, wurde die Überexpression durch genomische Integration in die ribosomale DNA erreicht. Anschließend wurde die Carotinoidzusammensetzung der Zellextrakte durch Hochleistungsflüssigkeitschromatographie an einer C18-Trennsäule oder durch Dünnschichtchromatographie bestimmt. Der Knock-Out-Nachweis erfolgte mittels Polymerase-Kettenreaktion und Amplifikation der Genloci, während die Anzahl integrierter Carotinoidgene durch quantitative Real-Time-PCR bestimmt wurde. Die Kultivierungen von X. dendrorhous wurden sowohl in Schikanekolben als auch in einem 2L-Bioreaktor durchgeführt.
Im Zuge der genetischen Modifikationen konnte der Ploidiegrad des Wildtyps bestimmt werden, der bis dahin unbekannt war. Durch das Auftreten von instabilen heterozygoten Stämmen und deren Überführung zu stabilen Homozygoten wurde die Existenz eines diploiden Genoms nachgewiesen. Um die für die biotechnologische Anwendung notwendige Stabilität der Carotinoidbiosyntheseleistung zu erreichen, wurden zwei Strategien entwickelt. Hierbei erfolgte die Stabilisierung der Stämme als Folge mitotischer Rekombination nach Subkultivierung und anschließender Farbselektion oder durch Induktion des sexuellen Zyklus und Sporulation.
Der crtI-Knock-Out führte zur Akkumulation von 3,6 mg/g dw Phytoen. Anschließend wurde die Limitierung der Phytoensynthese durch crtYB-Überexpression aufgehoben und die Versorgung der Carotinoidbiosynthese mit Vorläufermolekülen durch HMGR- und crtE-Überexpression erhöht. Im Bioreaktor wurde durch die Anwendung eines dreistufigen Fed-Batch-Prozesses, der eine effiziente Glucoseverwertung sicherstellte, mit 10,4 mg/g dw die höchste bis dato publizierte zelluläre Phytoenkonzentration im stabilisierten Hochproduzenten erreicht.
Der asy-Knock-Out führte zur Akkumulation von 4,5 mg/g dw ß-Carotin, das anschließend durch heterologe Expression der codon-optimierten ß-3,3-ß-Hydroxylase crtZoXd im Hochproduzenten zu 3,5 mg/g dw Zeaxanthin umgesetzt wurde. Zur Optimierung des Vorgehens wurden Knock-In-Konstrukte entwickelt, mit denen beide Schritte (Knock-Out und Integration von Carotinoidgenen) in nur einem molekular-biologischen Schritt durchgeführt und 94 % des in einem Wildtypstamm vorhanden ß-Carotins zu Zeaxanthin umgesetzt wurden. Die Optimierung der Wachstumsbedingungen bei der Bioreaktor-Kultivierung des stabilisierten Zeaxanthinproduzenten führte mit 10,8 mg/L zu einem 5-fach höheren Zeaxanthingehalt im Vergleich zur Schikane-Kultivierung.
Durch den Einsatz der Pentosen Arabinose und Xylose als alternative Kohlenstoffquellen wurde der Carotinoidgehalt der Phytoen- und Zeaxanthin-Hochproduzenten um 70 bzw. 92 % im Vergleich zur Glucose-Kultivierung gesteigert, wobei die Gründe für diesen Effekt in einer stärkeren Kohlenstoffverwertung und der Hemmwirkung von Glucose vermutet wurden. Aus verschiedenen pflanzlichen Abfallstoffen kann Xylose durch Hydrolyse freigesetzt werden, deren Nutzung zum Aufbau einer nachhaltigen und kostengünstigen biotechnologischen Carotinoidproduktion beitragen kann.
Darüber hinaus wurden multioxigenierte Zeaxanthinderivate, von denen eine positive Wirkung auf die menschliche Gesundheit vermutet wird, durch kombinatorische Biosynthese erhalten. Durch die schrittweise Integration der Gene crtZoXd, crtG (ß-2,2-Hydroxylase) und bkt (ß-4,4-Ketolase) in eine ß-Carotinmutante wurde die Biosynthese von Zeaxanthin, Nostoxanthin und schließlich von 4-Keto-Nostoxanthin und 4,4-Diketo-Nostoxanthin erreicht. Anschließend erfolgte die chemische Reduktion zu den neuartigen Carotinoiden 4-Hydroxy-Nostoxanthin und 4,4-Dihydroxy-Nostoxanthin und der zweifelsfreie Nachweis aller vier Carotinoide anhand der mittels Massenspektrometrie bestimmten Molekülmassen und Fragmentierungsmuster.
Die Analyse früher Entwicklungsstadien von Säugetierembryonen und daraus gewonnener Stammzelllinien kann entscheidende Erkenntnisse im Bereich der Reproduktionsbiologie und der regenerativen Medizin hervorbringen. Dabei spielt die Maus, als geeignetes Modellsystem für die Übertragbarkeit auf den Menschen eine wichtige Rolle, in erster Linie weil die Blastozysten der Maus verglichen mit menschliche Blastozysten eine morphologische Ähnlichkeit aufweisen. Humane embryonale Stammzelllinien haben großes Potential für die Anwendung in der regenerativen Medizin und vergleichend dazu wurde Gen-Targeting in embryonalen Stammzellen verwendet, um tausende neuer Mausstämme zu generieren. Die Gewinnung embryonaler Stammzellen erfolgt im Blastozystenstadium, diese können dann nach Injektion in eine andere Blastozyste zur Entwicklung aller Gewebearten, einschließlich der Keimbahngewebe, beitragen (Martin, 1981; Evans and Kaufman 1981).
Ursache einer Fehlgeburt können vor allem Defekte in der Entwicklung des Trophoblasten und des primitive Entoderms (PrE) sein, dabei sind ca. 5 % der Paare betroffen die versuchen ein Kind zu bekommen (Stephenson and Kutteh, 2007). Eine Untersuchung dieser Zelllinien im Mausmodell könnte weitere Erkenntnisse für die Gründe einer Fehlentwicklung liefern. Trophoblasten Stammzelllinien können aus den Blastozysten der Maus und dem extraembryonalen Ektoderm von bereits implantieren Embryonen gewonnen werden (Tanaka et al., 1998). Diese Zelllinien geben Aufschluss über die Entwicklung des Trophoblasten, fördern die Entwicklung der Plazenta und sind gleichzeitig ein gutes Modellsystem um die Implantation des Embryos im Uterus näher zu untersuchen. Zellen des primitive Entoderms (PrE) beeinflussen das im Dottersack vorhandene extraembryonale Entoderm, welches dort als “frühe Plazenta” fungiert und für die Versorgung des Embryos mit Nährstoffen zuständig ist (Cross et al., 1994). Des Weiteren besitzt das Entoderm einen induktiven Einfluss auf die Bildung von anterioren Strukturen und die Bildung von Endothelzellen sowie Blutinseln (Byrd et al., 2002).
Extraembryonale Endodermstammzellen (XEN Zellen) können aus Blastozysten gewonnen und in embryonale Stammzellen (ES-Zellen) umgewandelt werden (Fujikura et al., 2002; Kunath et al., 2005). Es war jedoch nicht bekannt, ob XEN-Zellen auch aus Postimplantations-Embryonen gewonnen werden können. XEN-Zellen tragen in vivo zur Entwicklung des Darmendoderms bei (Kwon et al., 2008; Viotti et al., 2014) und könnten als alternative, selbsterneuernde Quelle für extraembryonale Endoderm-abgeleitete Zellen dienen, die zur Herstellung von Geweben für die regenerative Medizin verwendet werden könnten (Niakan et al., 2013).
In der Embryogenese der Maus zeigt sich an Tag E3.0 eine kompakte Morula die sich allmählich in das Trophektoderm (TE) differenziert, welches wiederum den Embryonalknoten (“innere Zellmasse”) umschließt (Johnson and Ziomek, 1981). Ein wichtiger Schritt im Rahmen der Entwicklung findet an Tag E3.5 statt, in diesem Zeitraum gehen aus dem Embryonalknoten der pluripotente Epiblast und das primitive Entoderm hervor. Im späten Blastozystenstadium an Tag E4.5 liegt das PrE als Zellschicht entlang der Oberfläche der Blastocoel-Höhle. Aus dem Epiblast entwickeln sich im weiteren Verlauf der Embryo, das Amnion und das extraembryonale Mesoderm des Dottersacks. Die Zellen des Trophektoderm führen zur Entwicklung der Plazenta. Das PrE differenziert sich im Zuge der Weiterentwicklung in das viszerale Entoderm (VE) und das parietale Entoderm (PE) des Dottersacks (Chazaud et al., 2006; Gardner and Rossant, 1979; Plusa et al., 2008). VE umgibt den Epiblast und extraembryonisches Ektoderm (ExE). PE-Zellen wandern entlang der inneren Oberfläche von TE und sezernieren zusammen mit Trophoblasten-Riesenzellen Basalmembranproteine, um die Reichert-Membran zu bilden (Hogan et al., 1980). Die Reichert-Membran besteht aus Basalmembranproteinen, einschließlich Kollagenen und Lamininen, die zwischen den parietalen Endoderm- und Trophoblastzellen liegen. Diese Membran wirkt als ein Filter, der dem Embryo den Zugang zu Nährstoffen ermöglicht, während er eine Barriere zu den Zellen der Mutter bildet (Gardner, 1983).
...
Octanoic acid (C8 FA) is a medium-chain fatty acid which, in nature, mainly occurs in palm kernel oil and coconuts. It is used in various products including cleaning agents, cosmetics, pesticides and herbicides as well as in foods for preservation or flavoring. Furthermore, it is investigated for medical treatments, for instance, of high cholesterol levels. The cultivation of palm oil plants has surged in the last years to satisfy an increasing market demand. However, concerns about extensive monocultures, which often come along with deforestation of rainforest, have driven the search for more environmentally friendly production methods. A biotechnological production with microbial organisms presents an attractive, more sustainable alternative.
Traditionally, the yeast Saccharomyces cerevisiae has been utilized by mankind in bread, wine, and beer making. Based on comprehensive knowledge about its metabolism and genetics, it can nowadays be metabolically engineered to produce a plethora of compounds of industrial interest. To produce octanoic acid, the cytosolic fatty acid synthase (FAS) of S. cerevisiae was utilized and engineered. Naturally, the yeast produces mostly long-chain fatty acids with chain lengths of C16 and C18, and only trace amounts of medium-chain fatty acids, i.e. C8-C14 fatty acids. To generate an S. cerevisiae strain that produces primarily octanoic acid, a mutated version of the FAS was generated (Gajewski et al., 2017) and the resulting S. cerevisiae FASR1834K strain was utilized in this work as a starting strain.
The goal of this thesis was to develop and implement strategies to improve the production level of this strain. The current mode of quantification of octanoic acid includes labor-intensive, low-throughput sample preparation and measurement – a main obstacle in generating and screening for improved strain variants. To this end, a main objective of this thesis was the development of a biosensor. The biosensor was based on the pPDR12 promotor, which is regulated by the transcription factor War1. Coupling pPDR12 to GFP as the reporter gene on a multicopy plasmid allowed in vivo detection via fluorescence intensity. The developed biosensor enabled rapid and facile quantification of the short- and medium-chain fatty acids C6, C7 and C8 fatty acids (Baumann et al., 2018). This is the first biosensor that can quantify externally supplied octanoic acid as well as octanoic acid present in the culture supernatant of producer strains with a high linear and dynamic range. Its reliability was validated by correlation of the biosensor signal to the octanoic acid concentrations extracted from culture supernatants as determined by gas chromatography. The biosensor’s ability to detect octanoic acid in a linear range of 0.01-0.75 mM (≈1-110 mg/L), which is within the production range of the starting strain, and a response of up to 10-fold increase in fluorescence after activation was demonstrated.
A high-throughput FACS (fluorescence-activated cell sorting) screening of an octanoic acid producer strain library was performed with the biosensor to detect improved strain variants (Baumann et al., 2020a). For this purpose, the biosensor was genomically integrated into an octanoic acid producer strain, resulting in drastically reduced single cell noise. The additional knockout of FAA2 successfully prevented medium-chain fatty acid degradation. A high-throughput screening protocol was designed to include iterative enrichment rounds which decreased false positives. The functionality of the biosensor on single cell level was validated by adding octanoic acid in the range of 0-80 mg/L and subsequent flow cytometric analysis. The biosensor-assisted FACS screening of a plasmid overexpression library of the yeast genome led to the detection of two genetic targets, FSH2 and KCS1, that in combined overexpression enhanced octanoic acid titers by 55 % compared to the parental strain. This was the first report of an effect of FSH2 and KCS1 on fatty acid titers. The presented method can also be utilized to screen other genetic libraries and is a means to facilitate future engineering efforts.
In growth tests, the previously reported toxicity of octanoic acid on S. cerevisiae was confirmed. Different strategies were harnessed to create more robust strains. An adaptive laboratory evolution (ALE) experiment was conducted and several rational targets including transporter- (PDR12, TPO1) and transcription factor-encoding genes (PDR1, PDR3, WAR1) as well as the mutated acetyl-CoA carboxylase encoding gene ACC1S1157A were overexpressed or knocked out in producer or non-producer strains, respectively. Despite contrary previous reports for other strain backgrounds, an enhanced robustness was not observable. Suspecting that the utilized laboratory strains have a natively low tolerance level, four industrial S. cerevisiae strains were evaluated in growth assays with octanoic acid and inherently more robust strains were detected, which are suitable future production hosts.
...
Biotechnological processes offer better production conditions for a wide variety of goods of industrial interest. The production of aromatic compounds, for example, involves molecules of great value for cosmetic, plastic, agrochemical and pharmaceutic industries. However, the yield of such processes frequently prevents a proper implementtation that would allow the replacement of traditional production processes.
Numerous rational engineering approaches have been attempted to enhance metabolic pathways associated with desired products. Unfortunately, genetic modifications and heterologous pathway expression often lead to a higher metabolic burden on the producing organisms, ultimately leading to reduced production levels and fitness.
This project utilised adaptive laboratory evolution to better understand the development of synthetic cooperative consortia, using S. cerevisiae as a model organism. Specifically, a synthetic cooperative consortium was developed around the exchange of lysine and tyrosine, which was subjected to adaptive laboratory evolution aiming to induce mutations that would improve the system’s fitness either by enhanced production or upgraded stress resistance. Consequently, the mutant strains isolated after the evolution rounds were sequenced to identify relevant variations that could be related to the growth and production phenotypes observed.
The insights derived from this project are expected to contribute to further developing synthetic cooperative consortia with utilitarian purposes.
Derzeit breiten sich gebietsfremde Stechmücken (Diptera: Culicidae) aufgrund von Globalisierung und Klimawandel auf der ganzen Welt aus und bilden neue, stabile Populationen. Wegen ihrer hämatophagen Ernährungsweise sind sie Überträger von Pathogenen, die teilweise schwere bis tödliche Krankheiten beim Menschen, seinen Haustieren oder auch Wildtieren auslösen können. Mit den Stechmücken treten daher auch Infektionskrankheiten vermehrt in Gebieten auf, in denen sie vorher nicht vorkamen oder als bereits ausgerottet galten. Da die meisten im Menschen wirksamen Pathogene nicht durch Impfungen kontrolliert werden können, bleibt als eine der wenigen Möglichkeit der Krankheitsprävention die Dezimierung der Stechmückenpopulation. Daher sind Stechmücken momentan im Fokus von biologischer und epidemiologischer Forschung. Diese hat zum Ziel epidemische Krankheitsausbrüche vektorübertragener Krankheiten in der menschlichen Population zu verhindern. Eine Verringerung der lokalen Stechmückenpopulation bis hin zum Aussterben kann durch die Verwendung von Insektiziden, die Vernichtung von Bruthabitaten oder anderen Kontrollmaßnahmen erreicht werden. Jedoch sind diese Maßnahmen unterschiedlich effektiv, haben zum Teil unerwünsch-te ökologische und gesundheitsschädigende Folgen und sind unterschiedlich aufwendig und kostenintensiv in der Anwendung. Für die Entwicklung eines integrierten, effektiven, zielgerichteten und kostengünstigen Vektormanagements fehlen bislang jedoch die populationsbiologischen Grundlagen.
Ziel dieser Arbeit ist daher die Schaffung der Datengrundlage eines Integrierten Stechmückenmanagements für die Asiatische Buschmücke (Aedes japonicus japonicus THEOBALD 1901), die am weitesten verbreitete exotische Stechmücke in Deutschland. Schwerpunkte dafür wurden auf das zeitliche und räumliche Vorkommen, die Temperaturabhängigkeit des Lebenszyklus, sowie die Wirksamkeit von Kontrollmethoden gelegt.
Die Kenntnis der räumlichen Verbreitung und saisonalen Häufigkeit der Stechmücken ist notwendig, um befallene Standorte und Zeitpunkte des größten Populationszuwachses definieren zu können. Die Verbreitung und die Häufigkeit der endothermen Stechmücken sind stark von der Umgebungstemperatur abhängig, die beispielsweise deren Entwicklungsdauer und Sterblichkeit beeinflusst. Dabei entwickeln sich die verschiedenen Stadien (Ei, Larven, Puppe, Imago), die eine Stechmücke während ihres Lebens durchläuft, in Abhängigkeit von der Umgebungstemperatur unterschiedlich und haben jeweils andere Temperaturpräferenzen. Lebenszyklustabellen geben die Entwicklungsdauer und Mortalität pro Stadium in Abhängigkeit von der Temperatur an. Mit ihrer Hilfe können somit die räumlichen und zeitlichen Vorkommen und Häufigkeiten einer Stechmückenart berechnet werden. Dies ist insbesondere für Stechmücken in Gebieten mit jahreszeitlichen Temperaturveränderungen wichtig. Um Daten für eine solche Lebenszyklustabelle aufnehmen zu können, ist es notwendig Laborexperimente bei festgelegten Temperaturen durchzuführen. Die Voraussetzung dafür ist, dass die Stechmückenart im Labor optimale Bedingungen erhält, um ihren Lebenszyklus abschließen zu können. In dieser Arbeit wurde daher ein Laborprotokoll entwickelt, mithilfe dessen der Lebenszyklus der Asiatischen Buschmücke im Labor untersucht werden kann. Dazu wurden systematisch die Fütterung, die innerartliche Konkurrenz und das Wasservolumen des Brutge-fäßes für die aquatischen Stadien erprobt. Auf Basis dieses Protokolls wurden anschließend die Temperatureinflüsse auf die Entwicklung aller Stadien aufgenommen. Diese Daten dienten der Parametrisierung eines populationsdynamischen Modells. Dieses wurde verwendet, um Standorte mehrjähriger Populationen zu definieren, saisonale Häufigkeiten für Deutschland zu berechnen, durch Temperaturveränderungen hervorgerufene zukünftige Verbreitungsgebiete vorherzusagen, sowie Effekte von Kontrollmaßnahmen auf die Häufigkeit der Asiatischen Buschmücke zu modellieren.
Um eine dauerhafte Kontrolle der Stechmückenvektoren zu gewährleisten, ist weiterhin die permanente Neuentwicklung von wirksamen Kontrollmethoden notwendig. Dazu gehört die präventive Vermeidung von Bruthabitaten der aquatischen Stadien von Stechmücken. Die exotischen Stechmücken, die in Deutschland etabliert sind, gehören mehrheitlich der Gattung Aedes an und sind sogenannte Gefäßbrüter. Ihre bevorzugten Bruthabitate sind kleine Was-seransammlungen wie sie in Baumhöhlen, Gesteinsauswaschungen, Gießkannen, Regentonnen und Blumenuntersetzern vorkommen. In dieser Arbeit wurde untersucht, welche Farben und Volumina von Plastikbechern die Asiatische Buschmücke zur Eiablage bevorzugt, um präferierte Bruthabitate gezielt zu identifizieren und verringern zu können. Auch die Bereitstellung von Insektiziden wird durch in Stechmücken auftretende Insektizidresistenzen erschwert. Insektizide sollen dabei umweltfreundlich, spezifisch für den Zielorganismus und nicht gesundheitsschädlich für den Menschen sein. Weiterhin sind eine gute Anwendbarkeit, geringe Kosten und eine hohe Effizienz wünschenswert. Eine Quelle für potentielle Insektizide sind pflanzliche Stoffe, zum Beispiel ätherische Öle. Diese sind leicht erhältlich, natürlichen Ursprungs und wirksame Vergrämungsmittel gegen stechbereite Stechmückenweibchen. In dieser Arbeit wurde nach einer Literaturrecherche Nelkenöl ausgewählt und als Insektizid gegen Larven der Asiatischen Buschmücke getestet. Dafür wurden die akute toxische Wirkung von Nelkenöl bei drei Temperaturen untersucht und zusätzlich die Wirkung von Nelkenöl auf die Eiablage im Freiland. Nelkenöl zeigte dabei sowohl eine larvizide als auch eine eiablagehemmende Wirkung. Weiterhin wurde Kupfer in Form von kupferhaltigen Euromünzen als Larvizid untersucht. Kupfer ist ein wirksamer Stoff gegen die aquatischen Stadien von Stechmücken. Allerdings wurde der Stoff noch nicht in Form der einfach zu handhabenden, leicht erhältlichen Kupfermünzen getestet. Dazu wurden Vorexperimente durchgeführt, um herauszufinden, wieviel Kupferionen sich aus den Münzen lösen lassen. Anschließend wurde der akut toxische Effekt auf Larven der Asiatischen Buschmücke untersucht.
Ein Integriertes Stechmückenmanagement hat zum Ziel, die lokale Stechmückenpopulation zu kontrollieren, um so Stichen und daraus resultierender Krankheitsübertragung vorzubeugen. Dies erfolgt über die Aufklärung von Betroffenen, der Überwachung der Stechmückenpopulation, dem Testen auf Pathogenbefall und der direkten Kontrolle von Stechmücken. Diese Arbeit leistet einen Beitrag zu den Kenntnissen über die Laborhaltung einer exotischen Stechmückenart, zur Identifizierung von Bruthabitaten, zur zeitlichen und räumlichen Festlegung von Kontrollmaßnahmen und zur Anwendung von Larviziden und eines Vergrämungsmittels. Mit dieser Arbeit wurde die Grundlage eines faktenbasierten Integrativen Stechmückenmanagements für die Asiatische Buschmücke entwickelt, das eventuell auch auf weitere Aedes-Arten übertragbar ist, und als Handlungsempfehlung für politische Entscheidungstragende dienen kann.
Mitglieder der ubiquitär verbreiteten Cryptochrom-Photolyase-Familie sind Blaulicht-absorbierende Flavoproteine mit hoher Sequenzhomologie aber diversen Funktionen. Photolyasen katalysieren die Reparatur UV-Licht-induzierter DNA-Schäden. Cryptochrome (CRYs) wirken als lichtunabhängige Transkriptionsrepressoren innerhalb des Kern-Oszillators der circadianen Uhr oder als primäre Photorezeptoren zur Synchronisation dieser mit dem äußeren Tag-Nacht-Rhythmus und steuern durch Regulation der Genexpression Wachstum und Entwicklung. Gemeinsames Strukturmerkmal aller CPF-Vertreter ist die Photolyase- homologe Region (PHR), die das Chromophor Flavinadenindinukleotid (FAD) bindet, das lichtabhängig zwischen den Redoxformen oxidiert (FADox), semireduziert (FAD●- bzw. FADH●) und vollreduziert (FADH-) wechseln kann und damit die CRY-Konformation und -Aktivität beeinflusst. Unterscheidungsmerkmale sind die spezifische C-terminale Erweiterung (CTE) sowie die Komposition der FAD-Bindetasche, die unterschiedliche FAD-Redoxformen stabilisiert. Die Mechanismen der CRY-Photosignaltransduktion sind nicht völlig erforscht.
CryP ist eines von vier CRYs in der Diatomee Phaeodactylum tricornutum und gehört zur bislang nicht charakterisierten Gruppe pflanzenähnlicher CRYs. In vorhergehenden Untersuchungen wurde für CryP eine nukleare Lokalisation und damit verbunden eine blaulicht- sowie dunkelabhängige Regulation der Transkription unterschiedlichster Gene gezeigt. Zudem reguliert CryP das Proteinlevel photosynthetischer Lichtsammelkomplexe. CryP interagiert mit bisher nicht charakterisierten Proteinen aus dem Bereich DNA und Regulation sowie Ribosomen und Translation. Heterolog exprimiertes und isoliertes CryP stabilisiert das Neutralradikal FADH● und das Antennenchromophor Methenyltetrahydrofolat (MTHF).
In vorliegender Dissertation wurde die Bedeutung des FAD-Redoxzustands und der C-terminalen Proteindomäne für Strukturänderungen hinsichtlich der Oligomerisierung und Konformation sowie für das CryP-Interaktionsverhalten untersucht. Hierzu wurden rekombinante CryP-Varianten heterolog isoliert, die Mutationen in für die FAD-Reduzierbarkeit entscheidenden Aminosäuren oder eine Deletion der CTE tragen.
Die Analyse der CryP-Oligomerisierungsstufe und Konformation erfolgte mittels Ko-Präzipitation, nativen und zweidimensionalen PAGEs sowie partieller Proteolyse. Dabei wurde heterolog isoliertes CryP in seinen drei Redoxformen oxidiert (mit FADox), semireduziert (mit FADH●) und vollreduziert (mit FADH-) sowie das um die CTE-verkürzte CryP-PHR verglichen. Für CryP wurde eine redoxunabhängige, PHR-vermittelte Di- und Tetramerisierung über elektrostatische Wechselwirkung der Monomere beobachtet. Die CTE bindet spezifisch und redoxunabhängig an die PHR in einem Bereich um die FAD-Bindetasche. Dies schließt eine großräumige Konformationsänderung zwischen PHR und CTE infolge einer FAD-Photoreduktion wie für pflanzliche und viele tierische CRYs als Aktivierungsmechanismus für CryP aus.
Interaktionsstudien mittels zweidimensionaler PAGE gaben Aufschluss über unterschiedliche Bindeverhalten der beiden betrachteten Interaktionspartner an CryP. Sowohl BolA, ein potentieller redoxregulierter Transkriptionsfaktor, als auch ID42612 mit unbekannter Funktion interagieren mit CryP unabhängig von der FAD-Redoxform. Dabei bindet BolA an die CTE des CryP-Dimers und -Monomers, während ID42612 einen Komplex mit dem CryP-Dimer bildet.
Mittels in vitro Absorptions- und Fluoreszenzspektroskopie wurde die FAD-Redoxchemie von CryP und CryP-PHR verglichen. Die beiden Varianten unterscheiden sich in der FAD-Photoreduzierbarkeit und -Oxidationskinetik. Das Volllängenprotein CryP kann ohne externes Reduktionsmittel zum semireduzierten FADH● phototreduziert werden, das im Gegensatz zu bekannten CRYs über Tage im Dunkeln stabil gegen aerobe Oxidation ist. Eine Belichtung mit Reduktionsmittel führt zur Bildung des vollreduzierten FADH-, das innerhalb von Minuten zu FADH● rückoxidiert. Das um die CTE verkürzte CryP-PHR kann nur mit externem Reduktionsmittel zu FADH● photoreduziert werden, der vollreduzierte Zustand wird nie erreicht. Die Stabilisierung von FADH● gegen aerobe Oxidation im CryP-Holoprotein ist vergleichbar zur FAD-Redoxchemie von Photolyasen. Verglichen mit sonstigen charakterisierten CRYs ist die Wichtigkeit der CTE für eine effiziente FAD-Photoreduktion und FADH●-Stabilisierung eine CryP-spezifische Charakteristik.
Neben der CTE trägt die zu FAD-N5 proximal gelegene Position zur FADH●-Stabilisierung bei, wie Absorptionsmessungen an CryP_N417C zeigten. CryP weist mit Asparagin die gleiche Konservierung an dieser Position wie Photolyasen auf und unterscheidet sich damit ebenfalls von klassischen CRYs.
Analysen zur cryp-Transkription mittels qRT-PCR zeigten eine rhythmische Expression mit maximalen Transkriptmengen in der Nacht und eine rasche photoinduzierte Herunterregulation der Transkription...
In der vorliegenden Arbeit konnte gezeigt werden, dass bestimmte neuronale microRNAs im Rückenmark und in den Spinalganglien konstitutiv exprimiert und nach peripherer Entzündung mit Formalin oder Zymosan differenziell reguliert werden. Bei der SNI-induzierten Neuropathie konnte indessen keine signifikante Regulation der untersuchten microRNAs nachgewiesen werden. Aufgrund der Lokalisation in den Neuronen der Schmerz-verarbeitenden Laminae I und II des Dorsalhorns des Rückenmarks und angesichts der Regulation in entzündlich stimulierten Neuronen und Mikroglia wurde der Fokus der Arbeit auf die Untersuchung von microRNA-124a gelegt. Anhand von Expressionsanalysen konnte gezeigt werden, dass eine periphere entzündliche Stimulation mit Formalin oder Zymosan microRNA-124a im Rückenmark inhibiert, die Expression pro-inflammatorischer und pro-nozizeptiver Gene hiernach ermöglicht und ein vermehrtes Schmerzverhalten bewirkt. Die funktionelle Relevanz von microRNA-124a wurde in vivo mittels intravenöser Applikation von microRNA-124a-Modulatoren bei einem Modell für entzündliche Schmerzen, dem Formalin-Modell untersucht. Dabei führte die Hemmung von microRNA-124a zu einem verstärkten Schmerzverhalten, welches mit einer Hochregulation verschiedener Entzündungsmarker einherging. Die Überexpression von microRNA-124a dagegen antagonisierte die Hochregulation entzündlicher Mediatoren und führte zu einer Schmerzhemmung. Darüber hinaus konnte in der vorliegenden Arbeit der antinozizeptive Effekt von microRNA-124a mit der Regulation der Epigenetik-regulierenden Targets MeCP2, HDAC5 und MYST2 assoziiert werden und u.a. über die Hemmung des neuromodulierenden, pro-inflammatorischen Peptids BDNF verifiziert werden. Die spezielle Darreichung von microRNA-124a könnte demzufolge einen vielversprechenden Ansatz zur Therapie chronisch-entzündlicher Schmerzen liefern. Zukünftig werden weitere Studien notwendig sein um die eindeutige Funktion, die individuelle Wirkung sowie die therapeutische Relevanz von microRNA-124a zu analysieren. Darüber hinaus müssten Dosis-Wirkungs-Beziehungen und Nebenwirkungsprofile für microRNA-124a erstellt werden, um potenzielle Risiken, Chancen und Vorteile der microRNA-Modulation hinsichtlich einer humanen Schmerztherapie bewerten zu können.
In der vorliegenden Doktorarbeit zur Untersuchung der Rolle der Superoxid-Dismutasen in P. anserina lieferten die durchgeführten Analysen folgende Ergebnisse:
1)Sowohl in P. anserina als auch in S. cerevisiae wurde eine gemeinsame Regulation von SODs nachgewiesen: Stämme, die die mitochondriale MnSod (PaSod3 bzw. ScSod2) überexprimieren zeigen eine erhöhte Cu/ZnSOD-Aktivität (PaSOD1 bzw. ScSOD1).
2)Es konnte keine SOD-Aktivität für die putativen SODs Pa_1_10620, Pa_1_10630 und Pa_1_6300 detektiert werden. Für Pa_1_10620, dessen Überexpression unter Standardbedingungen zu einer Lebensverlängerung führt, wird eine Funktion als mitochondriales ribosomales Protein angenommen.
3)Der ∆PaSod3-Stamm weist keinen Unterschied im Phänotyp, der Wuchsrate und der Lebensspanne unter Standardbedingungen zum Wildtyp auf. Paraquat-Stress führt allerdings zu einer Kurzlebigkeit des ∆PaSod3-Stammes, wohingegen diese Mutante eine höhere Resistenz gegenüber Wasserstoffperoxid aufweist als der Wildtyp.
4)Transkriptomanalysen des Wildtyps und der ∆PaSod3-Mutante lassen vermuten, dass eine Hochregulation von Detoxifizierungs- und Energie-abhängigen Prozessen die durch den Verlust der mitochondrialen PaSOD3 vermuteten negativen Auswirkungen kompensieren.
5)PaSod3_OEx-Stämme weisen unter Standardbedingungen aufgrund der erhöhten intrazellulären Wasserstoffperoxid-Menge, bedingt durch die vermehrte Umsetzung von Superoxid, diverse negative Auswirkungen auf: Eine reduzierte Wuchsrate, verkürzte Lebensspanne, geringere Fertilität, stärkere Pigmentierung, vermehrt fragmentierte Mitochondrien, mehr unprozessierte mitochondriale Proteine und weniger Komplex IV der Atmungskette als der Wildtyp. Zusätzlich wird vermehrt über die alternative Oxidase geatmet, um die ROS-Generierung zu reduzieren.
6)Oxidativer Stress in Form von Paraquat führt in PaSod3_OEx-Stämmen zu einer weiteren Verkürzung der medianen Lebensspanne, während die maximale Lebensspanne von PaSod3_OEx3-Stämmen im Vergleich zum Wildtyp sogar verlängert ist. Wasserstoff-peroxid resultiert in stark verringerten medianen und maximalen Lebensspannen beider PaSod3-überexprimierenden Stämme.
7)Die Anzucht auf Medium mit zusätzlichem Mangan (80 µM MnSO4) kann die beobachteten Defekte der PaSod3_OEx-Stämme fast vollständig auf Wildtyp-Niveau revertieren: Die Wuchsrate, die Lebensspanne, der Phänotyp, die Mitochondrien-morphologie, die Prozessierung mitochondrialer Proteine und die Atmung entsprechen dem Wildtyp. Lediglich die Fertilität erreicht nicht das Wildtyp-Niveau. Diese positiven Effekte von Mangan werden erzielt, da die erhöhte Wasserstoffperoxid-Menge in PaSod3_OEx-Stämmen entsprechend ihrer Entstehung detoxifiziert wird, denn Mangan führt zu einer gesteigerten Transkription bzw. Aktivität von Katalasen und Peroxidasen sowie zu einer erhöhten Peroxiredoxin-Menge.
8)Die Anzucht des Wildtyps unter Wasserstoffperoxid-Stress resultiert in einer Lebens-spannenverkürzung. Diese kann durch Supplementation mit Mangan revertiert werden. Unter diesen Bedingungen weisen u. a. Peroxidasen eine erhöhte Aktivität auf.
Insgesamt ließen die gewonnenen Daten den Schluss zu, dass das Genom von P. anserina für drei aktive SODs kodiert. Ein Verlust der einzigen mitochondrial lokalisierten SOD kann durch die Induktion von Energie-abhängigen Prozessen sowie von Detoxifizierungsprozessen kompensiert werden. Ferner weisen die durchgeführten Studien darauf hin, dass PaSod3_OEx-Stämme als Modell für erhöhte intrazelluläre Wasserstoffperoxid-Mengen in P. anserina verwendet werden können. Darüber hinaus wurde ein Zusammenhang zwischen Mangan und dem Detoxifizierungs-netzwerk in P. anserina nachgewiesen. Dabei können zwei Mechanismen zur Reduktion der Wasserstoffperoxid-Mengen unterschieden werden: Bei Vorhandensein ausreichender Mengen Mangan kommt es zu einer stärkeren Detoxifizierung von Wasserstoffperoxid. Ist Mangan allerdings limitiert und die Detoxifizierung kann nicht gesteigert werden, wird eine Umstellung der Atmung eingeleitet, um die neu entstehende ROS-Menge zu minimieren.
Das maligne Gliom, auch Glioblastom multiforme (GBM) genannt, ist der häufigste und gleichzeitig auch bösartigste hirneigene Tumor und macht rund 2% aller Krebsneuerkrankungen aus. Die Weltgesundheitsorganisation (world health organisation, WHO) stuft das GBM als Grad IV Tumor ein, was es als hochmalignen Tumor auszeichnet der infiltrativ in das umliegende Hirnparenchym einwandert und mit den gegenwärtigen Behandlungsmethoden, bestehend aus Resektion des Tumors, Chemotherapie und Strahlentherapie nicht kuriert werden kann. Das aggressive Wachstum und die ausgeprägte Resistenz dieses astrozytären Tumors gegenüber den verfügbaren Therapien der Bestrahlung und Chemotherapie sind Hauptgründe für die schlechte Prognose für Patienten mit Glioblastomen, deren medianes Überleben immer noch unter der Zwei-Jahres-Grenze liegt. Daher ist es von Nöten neue therapeutische Strategien auf Grundlage der Chemotherapie zu entwickeln, die selektiv wichtige, deregulierte Signalwege der Krebszelle angreifen. Einer dieser Signalwege in Gliomen ist der Stat3-Signalweg (signal transducer and activator of transcription). Stat3, ein latenter zytoplasmatischer Transkriptionsfaktor liegt in Gliomen oftmals konstitutiv aktiv vor. Diese Deregulation des Signalweges führt zur dauerhaften Transkription proonkogener Zielgene die in transformierten Zellen zu Proliferation, Apoptoseresistenz, Neoangiogenese und Immunsupprimierung führen können. In der vorliegenden Arbeit wurde untersucht, inwiefern eine pharmakologische oder gentechnische Inhibierung von Stat3 molekulare und zelluläre Charakteristika von Gliomen beeinflusst. Dazu wurde für die in-vivo Versuche ein syngenes, murines Gliom-Transplantationsmodell verwendet dessen Pathologie der eines humanen Glioms gleicht und den Vorteil besitzt keine immunsupprimierten Tiere verwenden zu müssen. Die murinen Gliomzelllinien, gewonnen aus spontanen Gliomen von GFAP-v-Src überexprimierenden Mäusen, wurden vorher in-vitro und auch exvivo bezüglich ihres Verhaltens auf die pharmakologische oder gentechnische Inhibierung von Stat3 charakterisiert. Für die pharmakologische Inhibierung wurde Kurkumin gewählt, der biologische aktive Wirkstoff der Pflanze Curcuma longa. In der vorliegenden Arbeit konnte gezeigt werden, dass eine Behandlung mit Kurkumin konzentrationsabhängig die Phosphorylierung von Stat3 in drei murinen Gliomzelllinien hemmt. Des Weiteren zeigte sich, dass auch die Proliferation der untersuchten transformierten Zellen sowie ihre Fähigkeit zur Invasion und Migration konzentrationsabhängig durch den Einsatz von Kurkumin inhibiert werden konnte, ohne dabei allerdings die Proliferation von primären Astrozyten im gleichen Maße zu hemmen. Kurkumin induziert zusätzlich in den überaus aopotoseresistenten Gliomzellen einen G2/M Zellzyklusarrest. Diese beobachteten Effekte stehen im Zusammenhang mit der konzentrationsabhängigen transkriptionellen Beeinflussung Kurkumins der tumorpromotenden Stat3- Zielgene. Durch Einsatz einer Stat3-Mutante, Stat3C, die ohne Phosphorylierung konstitutiv aktiv in der Zelle vorliegt, konnte in der vorliegenden Arbeit gezeigt werden, dass Kurkumin seinen Einfluss auf die Invasion und Migration der murinen Gliomzelllinien auch über den Stat3-Signalweg vermittelt, zeigte sich, dass durch Einbringung dieser Mutante trotz Kurkuminbehandlung die Migrations- und Invasionsfähigkeit partiell retabliert werden konnte. Durch dietätische Gabe von Kurkumin konnte in tumortragenden Mäusen gezeigt werden, dass die invitro ermittelten Effekte an einem längeren Überleben jener Mäuse beteiligt waren, deren Futter das Kurkumin enthielt. Die Administration des Kurkumins wurde entsprechend einer für die Klinik bevorzugten Darreichugsform gewählt. Im zweiten Teil dieser Arbeit wurde Stat3 in den murinen Gliomzelllinien durch Transduktion mit shRNA gerichtet gegen die Stat3-mRNA stabil depletiert um im Folgenden untersuchen zu können, welche zellulären und molekularen Konsequenzen konstitutiv aktives Stat3 für die Gliomzellen hat. Es zeigte sich, dass der Wegfall von Stat3 das Migrations- und Invasionspotential signifikant verringerte und die Expression tumorfördernder Zielgene ebenfalls in den Stat3-defizienten Zellen auf Protein- und mRNA-Ebene signifikant reduziert war. Der Einfluss von Stat3 auf die Hif1α-Expression, ein Transkriptionsfaktor der die Anpassung der Gliomzellen an ein hypoxisches Milieu und damit verbunden auch Migration und Invasion induziert kann, macht deutlich, dass konstitutiv aktives Stat3 unter normoxischen sowie auch hypoxischen Bedingungen upstream entscheidender Transkriptionsfaktoren liegt und sich somit als Zielmolekül für eine therapeutische Intervention anbietet. Eine ex-vivo Applikation auf organotypischen Schnittkulturen zeigte, dass durch den Wegfall von Stat3 in den murinen Gliomzellen die Einzelzellinvasion unterbunden werden konnte was entscheidend für das klinisch hochrelevante Problem der Rezidive sein könnte. Transplantierte man nun Kontroll- und Stat3-defiziente Zellen orthotrop in die immunkompetenten Mäuse zeigte die Kaplan-Meier-Kurve, dass der Krankheitsbeginn so wie das mediane Überleben in den Mäusen mit Stat3-defizientem Tumor zeitlich deutlich nach hinten verschoben war. Neben den invitro und ex-vivo ermittelten Effekte des Stat3-Wegfalls ist anzunehmen, dass das verlängerte Überleben dieser Mäuse auch mit der fehlenden Immunsupprimierung der Stat3-defizienten Tumore zusammenhängt. Es zeigte sich, dass eine Intervention gegen Stat3, ob nun pharmakologisch oder gentechnisch, die malignen Charakteristika des Glioblastoms positiv beeinflussen kann. Stat3, bestätigt als onkogener Transkriptionsfaktor, stellt damit eine lohnenden Zielstruktur in Gliomen dar.
Even one century after Santiago Ramón y Cajal’s groundbreaking contribu- tions to neuroscience, one of the most fundamental questions in the field is still largely open, namely understanding how the shape of a dendrite is adapted to its specific biological function. A systematic investigation of this problem is challenging both technically and conceptually because neurons have diverse genetic, molecular, morphological, connectional and functional properties.
In the light of the preceding, dendritic arborisation (da) neurons of the Drosophila melanogaster larva PNS have proven to be an excellent model system for the study of such growth and patterning processes. Structure and function in these cell classes are intimately intertwined, as class type-specific dendritic arbour differentiation processes are required to satisfy a given phys- iological need. Also, there is a remarkable genetic toolkit that enables one to selectively and reproducibly label, image and manipulate each one of these sensory neuron classes. In this thesis, I address the aforementioned open problem by linking single-cell patterning, information processing and wiring optimisation in sensory da neurons to behaviour in Drosophila larva.
In particular, I study Class I ventral peripherical dendritic arborisation (c1vpda) neurons. These are a class of proprioceptive neurons that relay information on the position of the larva’s body back to the CNS during crawling behaviour to assure proper locomotion. Their stereotypical comb- like shaped dendritic branches spread along the body-wall, and they get noticeably deformed during crawling behaviour. The bending of the den- dritic branches is hypothesised to be a possible mechanism to transduce the mechanosensory inputs arising from cuticle folding. Interestingly, c1vpda neurons do not necessarily satisfy optimal wiring constraints since they are required to pattern into a specific shape to fulfil their function. Therefore, I considered the da system to study how the specific functional requirements may be combined with optimal wiring constraints during development.
Although the molecular machinery of dendrite patterning in c1vpda neurons is well studied, the precise elaboration of the comb-like shaped dendrites of these cells remains elusive. Moreover, even though a lot of work has been put into the description and quantification of growth processes of the nervous system, there are still few solid and standardised models of arbour staging and patterning. Importantly, the defining parameters that determine the dendrite elaboration program that in turn is responsible for creating the final arbour morphology are still unknown. As a result, unraveling possible universal stages of dendrite elaboration shared between different model systems and cell types is challenging.
Thus, in order to understand the development of the fine regulation of branch outgrowth that leads to the observed terminal arbour morphology in the mature cell, I collected in vivo, long-term, non-invasive high temporal res- olution time-lapse recordings of dendritic trees during the differentiation process in the embryo and its maturation phase in the larva. For further analysis, I developed new algorithms that quantified the structural changes in dendrite morphology in the time-lapse videos. My approach provides a framework to analyse such developmental data, or any dataset comprising continuous morphological dynamical processes in an unbiased way. Using these newly developed methods, I examined the development of a sample of c1vpda cells and identified five stages of differentiation in these data: initial stem polarization, extension, pruning, stabilization, and isometric stretching during larval stages.
The beginning of the growth process is marked by the polarisation of the main stem. Subsequently, during the extension phase, branches emerge interstitially from the existing main stem. Later, higher-order branches sprout from pre-existing lateral branches, increasing arbour complexity. This is followed by a pruning stage where developmental intermediate dendritic branches are removed. This step leads to a spatial rearrangement of the dendritic tree. The end of the pruning step is followed by a stabilisation period where arbour morphology remains virtually unaltered in the embryo. After hatching, c1vpda dendrites experience an isometric scaling, with their branching complexity and pattern being invariant across all larval stages.
After dissecting the c1vpda dendrites spatiotemporal differentiation process, I established a link between dendritic shape and behaviour. I measured intra- cellular Ca++ activity in the dendrite branches of l1 larvae during forward locomotion, while simultaneously recording branch deformation using a dual genetic line. I reported that post-embryonic c1vpda dendrites Ca++ responses increased in freely crawling larvae. Furthermore, I showed strong correlations between Ca++ signal and deformation of the comb-like dendritic ranches during body-wall contractions.
Then, using a geometrical model, I provided evidence that the pruning stage could reorganise the dendrite morphology to maximise mechanosensory re- sponses during body wall contraction. I showed that the angle orientation of each side branch correlates with the bending curvature and thus with the me- chanical displacement of the cell membrane during locomotion. During the pruning phase, I observed a preferential reduction of less efficient branches with low bending curvature, influencing the mechanisms of dendritic sig- nal integration of c1vpda sensory neurons. I proceeded to quantify branch dynamics at single tip resolution during pruning, providing evidence that a simple random pruning mechanism is sufficient to remodel the tree structure compatible with the observed way.
I used these time-lapse data to constrain a new computational noisy growth model with random pruning based on optimal wiring principles. This model is able to generate highly realistic synthetic c1vpda morphologies. The model furthermore requires few parameters to generate highly accurate temporal development trajectories and morphologies at single-cell level. Utilising this data and model enabled me to investigate upon the hypothesis that a noisy dendrite growth and random pruning mechanism synergise to achieve den- dritic trees efficient in terms of both wiring and function. My findings show how single neurons can create functionally specialised dendrites while min- imising wiring costs, elucidating how general principles of self-organisation may be involved in the generation of these structures.
Many metabolic pathways of eukaryotes are carried out in form of interconnected pathways, which take place in organelles. The organelle membrane separates the reaction compartments from each other, making it a key feature of organelle existence in the cell. To maintain cellular homeostasis, organelle positioning in and transport through the cell as well as organelle interaction are important for the organisms. In plants, organellar movement of peroxisomes, Golgi stacks and mitochondria was shown to be mediated by the actin-myosin machinery. The molecular mechanisms are not elucidated, but working models comprise classical movement mechanisms of motor proteins pulling their cargo on cytoskeletal filaments. In contrast, many mechanisms of chloroplasts movement, which are regulated by blue and red light, are deciphered but follow a different molecular mechanism. Plastidal relatives of the chloroplast have long been disregarded by scientific research but carry out important metabolic reactions to maintain cellular homeostasis. The cellular transport and movement mechanisms of root plastids have not been described in detail until now. Additionally, all plastid subspecies can form tubular structures, called stromules. Those are thought to be involved in the organelle communication and metabolite exchange. Since they are very mobile structures, they influence the organellar dynamic of plastids. This work aimed for an in-detail description of the cellular movements of root plastids in the plant Arabidopsis thaliana to elucidate underlying mechanisms of their movement. Additionally, the dynamics of root plastid stromules were investigated, led by the questions, if and how stromules are involved in the mediation of plastidal movement and their overall dynamics. Plastidal movement in Arabidopsis thaliana was captured using light sheet-based fluorescence microscopy. 4D image data was automatically analyzed using the program Arivis Vision 4D with subsequent manual correction. Additionally to the 4D approach, a manual 3D analysis of plastid and stromule dynamics was performed. The results of the semiautomated analysis displayed heterologous distribution of the plastidal movement. Using a combination of the vector length of each motion event and the angle in relation to previous motion vectors, the proportions of different movement patterns were determined. Main fractions of the data showed undirected motion of plastids, whereas small proportions displayed directed movement with speed up to 8.5 µm/sec. Directed motion was shown to be carried out on defined routes in the cell. Salt stress did not affect plastidal motion, whereas drought stress lead to its reduction. Sucrose depletion led to a drastic decrease of plastidal movement. Additionally, stromule dynamics were investigated using the acquired image data. Stromules were observed in high frequency mainly at stationary plastids giving them the opportunity of dynamic interaction in their cellular surrounding. Stromules reached lengths of up to 60 µm. Additionally, they displayed a variety of movement patterns that contributed greatly to the overall plastid dynamics. Stromule related motion events were captured reaching up to 3.2 µm/sec. Similar to determined plastid dynamics, stromule motions were reduced during drought stress and sucrose depletion, but also were negatively influenced by salt stress. Those results strongly favor an actin-myosin mediated movement machinery mediating the plastidal and stromule movement. This stands in contrast to previous results describing the movement mechanisms of light induced chloroplast movement.
In an additional approach, the molecular mechanisms underlying stromule formation were analyzed. Previous results describe that stromule formation can be induced at isolated chloroplasts of the plant Nicotiana benthamiana by mixing it with concentrated cell extract. During this work, a variation of the described assay was established using the plant Pisum sativum. It was shown that an unknown protein factor presumably undergoing protein-lipid interaction is responsible for in vitro stromule formation. Using a combination of sucrose gradient centrifugation and anion exchange chromatography, the desired factor could be enriched, while the majority of unwanted proteins could be reduced drastically. A following LC-MS analysis revealed a selection of proteins with membrane interaction- and unknown functions that might be involved in in vitro stromule formation.
Cerebellar ataxias are a group of neurodegenerative disorders primarily affecting the cerebellum. Although causative mutations in several genes have been identified there is currently no cure for ataxias.
The first part of this dissertation is focused on Spinocerebellar ataxia type 2 (SCA2). SCA2 is a dominant ataxia caused by repeat expansion mutations in the ATXN2 gene, which encodes the protein Ataxin2 (ATXN2). A polyglutamine (polyQ) tract consisting of CAG repeats interrupted by CAA was identified at exon 1 of ATXN2. Healthy individuals have between 22 and 23 glutamines, while expansions longer than 33 CAG repeats cause SCA2. The most noticeable symptom that SCA2 patients show is ataxic gait; however, they also show cerebellar dysarthria, dysdiadochokinesia, and ocular dysmetria caused by the progressive cerebellar degeneration.
To model the SCA2 disease, we generated a new mouse model where 100 CAG repeats were introduced in the mouse Atxn2 gene via homologous recombination. The characterization of this mouse model, Atxn2-CAG100-KIN, demonstrated that it reproduces the symptomatology observed in SCA2 patients. These animals showed significant loss of weight over time, brain atrophy, and motor deficits.
In addition, ATXN2 intermediate expansions have been linked to the pathology of Amyotrophic lateral sclerosis (ALS) as a risk factor. ALS is a fatal neurodegenerative disease where the motor neurons in the brain and spinal cord degenerate. A hallmark of ALS is the presence of TDP43-positive inclusions in neurons and glia. Further studies of post mortem spinal cord samples from SCA2 patients showed severe and widespread neurodegeneration of the central somatosensory system. Therefore, it was of interest to further investigate the pathology affection of this tissue in the Atxn2-CAG100-KIN line and the relationship between ATXN2 and TDP43. The characterization of the spinal cord pathology via protein quantification, transcript quantification, and immunohistochemistry showed a preferential affection of RNA binding proteins (RBP) in the spinal cord rather than the cerebellum. The ALS-linked factors TDP43 and TIA1 showed time-dependent co-aggregation with ATXN2 in spinal cord sections together with an increase of CASP3 levels. Therefore, this mouse model can help develop new therapies and evaluate their effect in differently affected areas.
A transcriptome data set from Atxn2-CAG100-KIN spinal cord samples at the final disease stage of this mouse model showed a strong up-regulation of RNA toxicity-, immune- and lysosome-implicated factors. These data pointed to a pathological reactivation of the synaptic pruning and phagocytosis in microglia. ATXN2-positive aggregates were found in microglia from spinal cord sections of 14-month-old Atxn2-CAG100-KIN via immunohistochemistry. The characterization of microglial response and the potentially deleterious effects of the expanded ATXN2 in this cell type could lead to therapies to improve patients’ living standards or delay the symptoms’ onset.
The second part of this thesis was focused on an autosomal recessive form of cerebellar ataxia, Ataxia Telangiectasia (A-T), with childhood onset. A-T patients show severe cerebellar atrophy manifesting as ataxia when the child starts to walk. The genetic cause of A-T is loss-of-function-mutations in the Ataxia Telangiectasia Mutated gene (ATM). ATM is a kinase involved in DNA damage response, oxidative stress, insulin resistance, autophagy via mTOR signaling, and synaptic function.
Working with proteome data from cerebrospinal fluid of 12 A-T patients and 12 healthy controls, we aimed to define novel biomarkers that would allow following the neurodegeneration in extracellular fluid. Additional validation efforts with ~2-month-old Atm-knock-out (Atm-/-) cerebellar samples helped us to define a scenario were the deficit of vesicle-associated ATM alters the secretion of ApoB, reelin, and glutamate. As extracellular factors, apolipoproteins and their cargo such as vitamin E may be useful for neuroprotective interventions.
Die klimatische Nische beschreibt die klimatischen Bedingungen, unter denen eine Art eine stabile Population aufrechterhalten kann. Die Quantifizierung von Klimanischen ist ein wichtiges Werkzeug, um tiefergehende Einsichten in individuelle Art-Umwelt Beziehungen zu erlangen, um den Effekt des Klimawandels effektiv zu bewerten, und um Arten- und Naturschutz zu unterstützen. Ein makroökologischer Ansatz ist von Vorteil um Ökosysteme über ein breites taxonomisches, geographisches und zeitliches Spektrum zu untersuchen, und damit die klimatischen Nischen vieler Arten auf eine konsistente Art und Weise zu quantifizieren und vergleichen.
Im Kontext des aktuellen Klimawandels ist es wichtig zu verstehen, ob Arten in der Lage sind ihre Klima-nische anzupassen. Viele bisherige Vorhersagen über klimawandelbedingte Veränderungen von Artverbreitungen beruhen auf der Annahme, dass die klimatische Nische einer Art konstant ist. Allerdings ist bekannt, dass Arten ihre klimatischen Präferenzen auf unterschiedlichen Zeitskalen verändern - sowohl über kurze (ökologische) als auch evolutionäre Zeiträume. Dies ist ein wichtiger, aber oft missachteter Faktor für die Nischenquantifizierung. Ein gutes Beispiel für solche ökologische Dynamiken sind Zugvögel, die etwa 20% aller Vogelarten ausmachen. Sie stellen eine interessante, aber auch herausfordernde Artengruppe für die Untersuchung klimatischer Nischen dar. Des Weiteren ist es wichtig klimatische Nischen über evolutionäre Zeiträume zu untersuchen, um die Prozesse zu verstehen, die Evolution, Diversifikation und Extinktion unterliegen, da sich Klimanischen mit der Anpassung einzelner Arten an neue klimatische Gegebenheiten ebenfalls wandeln. Bislang hat ein Mangel an geographisch expliziten Daten über terrestrische Umwelt-bedingungen durch evolutionäre Zeiträume eine explizite Überprüfung dieser Zusammenhänge verhindert.
Das übergeordnete Ziel dieser Dissertation war es, die ökologische (d.h. saisonale) und evolutionäre Dynamik klimatischer Nischen von Vögeln zu untersuchen. Dazu wurde ein Ansatz gewählt der makroökologische, und evolutionsbiologische Methoden vereint, um ein breites taxonomisches und zeitliches Spektrum abzudecken. Das erste Kapitel bearbeitet die Frage wie klimatische Nischen am besten zu quantifizieren sind, wenn man die Dynamik des Vogelzuges in Betracht zieht. Dazu wurde eine Datenbank erstellt, die das Zugverhalten aller 10.443 lebenden Vogelarten katalogisiert. Des Weiteren wurde eine Übersicht über die Methoden zur Quantifizierung klimatischer Nischen in der makroökologischen Literatur erstellt. Das Ergebnis derselben ist, dass die überwiegende Mehrzahl der Veröffentlichungen saisonalen Zugbewegungen nicht ausreichend berücksichtigt. Zuletzt habe ich anhand der Avifauna Australiens die Vor- und Nachteile der Verwendung von Verbreitungskarten gegenüber Punktverbreitungsdaten zur Erfassung saisonaler geographischer Muster der Artenvielfalt bewertet. Damit bietet dieses Kapitel Rahmenempfehlungen für die Datenanforderungen und Methoden, die je nach Zugverhalten einer Art, und dem geographischen, bzw. zeitlichen Fokus einer Studie für eine optimale Nischenquantifizierung notwendig sind.
Im zweiten Kapitel untersuchte ich die saisonale Dynamik klimatischer Nischen von Zugvögeln. Dabei überprüfte ich die Hypothese, dass Zugvögel in ihrem Jahreszyklus durch die Zugbewegung eine gewisse Klimanische verfolgen. Zu diesem Zweck habe ich mit Brut- und Überwinterungsarealkarten saisonale Klima-nischen für 437 Zug- und Standvogelarten aus acht Kladen der Sperlingsvögel (Passeriformes) charakterisiert. Mit Ordinationsmethoden wurde dann der innerartliche saisonale Nischenüberlapp quantifiziert. Der Beweis für die Verfolgung einer klimatischen Nische in einer Art war von mehreren Faktoren, z.B. der geographischen Verortung des Brutareals und der Zugrichtung, abhängig. Dies lässt darauf schließen, dass sich die Ursachen für den Vogelzug sowohl geographisch als auch saisonal (d.h. abhängig von der Zugrichtung) unterscheiden.
Im dritten Kapitel untersuchte ich die evolutionäre Dynamik klimatischer Nischen in Steinschmätzern (Gattung Oenanthe), um explizit zu untersuchen ob es einen Zusammenhang zwischen den Raten klimatischer Nischen-evolution und den Veränderungen paläoklimatischer Bedingungen gibt. Methoden der Klimanischen-quantifizierung wurden mit datierten molekularen Phylogenien verknüpft, um die Raten klimatischer Nischen-evolution mit einem variablen Ratenmodell abzuschätzen. Paläoklimatische Umweltbedingungen wurden mit paläobiologischen Methoden aus dem Fossilbericht altweltlicher Säugetiere der vergangenen 20 Millionen Jahre erschlossen. Die Fallstudie konnte keinen Zusammenhang zwischen Nischenevolution und Umwelt-bedingungen feststellen. Dies legt nahe, dass Vögel als überaus mobile Organismen, auf Klimaveränderungen eher durch Arealverschiebungen reagieren, als durch eine Anpassung ihrer klimatischen Nische. Die Klimanischen der Steinschmätzer waren allerdings an sich nicht statisch, so dass andere Faktoren wie z.B. biologische Wechselbeziehungen für die Nischenevolution dieser Gattung verantwortlich sein müssen.
Meine Dissertation beleuchtet die zentrale Bedeutung zeitlicher Dynamiken für den Nischenraum, den Arten über ökologische (d.h. saisonale) und evolutionäre Zeiträume einnehmen. Aus ihr ergeben sich methodische Konsequenzen für zukünftige Studien klimatischer Nischen. Der Befund, dass die klimatischen Nischen von Zugvögeln nicht saisonal konstant sind, zeigt dass es für mobile Kladen wie Vögel notwendig ist die klimatischen Bedingungen über den gesamten Jahreszyklus und das gesamte Verbreitungsgebiet in Betracht zu nehmen, um die jeweiligen klimatischen Nischen voll charakterisieren zu können.
Über diese methodischen Innovationen hinaus, hat meine Arbeit auch wichtige theoretische und praktische Schlussfolgerungen produziert. Zum einen zeigt die Betrachtung saisonaler Klimanischen, dass Zugvögel entgegen gängiger Annahmen nicht denselben Umweltbedingungen in ihren Brut- und Überwinterungsarealen ausgesetzt sind. Zum anderen zeigt meine Betrachtung von Klimanischen über evolutionäre Zeiträume, dass die Nischenevolution nicht von klimatischen Bedingungen angetrieben wird. Zusammengenommen zeigen diese Ergebnisse auf unterschiedlichen Zeitskalen, dass das Klima nicht der alleinige Faktor ist, der die Artverbreitung von Vögeln bestimmt. Während dieser Befund Raum für Optimismus schafft, was die Auswirkungen des aktuellen Klimawandels auf Vögel angeht, zeigt er auch auf, dass Faktoren wie wechselseitige Artbeziehungen und das Mobilitätspotential von Arten einen wichtigen Einfluss auf Artverbreitungen ausüben. Diese Faktoren könnten jedoch an sich vom Klimawandel beeinflusst sein, und Untersuchungen dieses Zusammenspiels zwischen Klima und anderen Faktoren und die daraus resultierenden Einflüsse auf Artareale bieten ein vielversprechendes Arbeitsfeld für zukünftige Studien.
Die vorliegende Dissertation mit dem Titel: Ecophysiological monitoring of Oaks in Central Europe, introduced in the framework of proactive climate change mitigation beschäftigt sich mit der Anwendung zerstörungsfreier, radiometrischer Methoden zur Bestimmung von Pigment- und Stickstoffkonzentrationen und der photosynthetischen Funktionalität in Blättern von heimischen und gebietsfremden Eichen und ihre Beeinflussung durch Trocken-, Hitze- und Kältestress.
Die Eichenarten Quercus robur L. (Stieleiche), Q. pubescens Willd. (Flaumeiche), Q. frainetto Ten. (Ungarische Eiche), Q. ilex L. (immergrüne Steineiche) und Q. rubra L. (amerikanische Roteiche) wurden im Frühjahr 2011 auf einer Versuchsfläche im Frankfurter Stadtwald gepflanzt, um ihre Nutzung als potentielle Waldbäume in einem sich ändernden Klima zu untersuchen. Über eine Dauer von zwei Jahren wurden diese Arten mit einem hohen Maß an blattspezifischer Merkmalsvariabilität beobachtet und beprobt. Ziel war es, die interspezifischen Unterschiede und die jahreszeitliche Dynamik von morphologischen und chemischen Blattmerkmalen sowie die Beeinflussung der radiometrischen Bestimmung des Chlorophyllgehaltes (und damit assoziierten Komponenten wie z.B. Blattstickstoffgehalt und Karotinoiden) und der photosynthetischen Funktionalität durch klimatische Umweltbelastungen in Eichen zu untersuchen. Die Analyse der Blattproben zielte neben der Bestimmung der Beziehung zwischen absoluten und optisch ermittelten Pigmentgehalten auf die Ermittlung des Einflusses der Blattstruktur auf die Lichttransmission im roten und infrarotem Bereich des Elektromagnetischen Spektrums ab, sowie auf die artspezifische Korrelation von Blattstickstoff zu Blattchlorophyll zu dessen indirekte Quantifizierung. Des Weiteren wurden Versuche zur Trocken- und Hitzestressanpassung durchgeführt, um eine potentiell artspezifische Stressantwort, sowie eine mögliche Beeinflussung der aufgenommenen radiometrischen Messwerte zu ermitteln. Ein zusätzliches Monitoringprogramm im Winter 2012/2013 mit einer Dauer von sechs Monaten ermöglichte die Überprüfung der Anpassungsfähigkeit der immergrünen Steineiche (Q. ilex) an mitteleuropäische Winterbedingungen und die Veränderung der photosynthetischen Funktionalität unter Kältestress. Messungen im Zusammenhang mit der praktischen Anwendbarkeit der zerstörungsfreien, optischen Methode und zur Bereitstellung von Referenzdaten für zukünftige Evaluierungen komplementieren die Untersuchungen.
Signifikante, artspezifische Unterschiede wurden in den blattmorphologischen Schlüsselmerkmalen in den Quercus-Arten ermittelt. Die artspezifischen Unterschiede in den morphologischen Blattmerkmalen beeinflussten auf signifikante Weise die Beziehung zwischen absoluten, massebasierten Pigment- und Stickstoffgehalten und deren radiometrischen Bestimmung. Wurden die Pigmentgehalte hingegen auf die Blattfläche bezogen und die Stickstoffgehalte mittels des Verhältnisses von Blattfläche zu Trockenmasse korrigiert, zeichnete sich eine Beziehung zwischen absoluten und optisch ermittelten Werten ab, der jegliche jahreszeitliche oder artspezifisch morphologische Variabilität fehlte und die somit für alle Quercus-taxa anwendbar ist. Koeffizienten für die Berechnung von flächenbezogenen Gehalten von Gesamtchlorophyll, Chl a, Chl b und Carotinoiden für die jeweiligen Quercus-taxa, wie auch für ein artübergreifendes Modell wurden ermittelt, um die Bestimmung dieser Gehalte während aller Entwicklungsstufen zu ermöglich. Aus der jahreszeitlichen Entwicklung der Pigmentgehalte konnten drei deutliche Phasen abgeleitet werden: Die Phase der Blattentwicklung im Frühling, einer Plateauphase mit geringen Veränderungen (“core vegetation time”) und die Phase des Pigmentabbaus während der Herbstlaubfärbung. Die Übergänge zwischen diesen Phasen variierten zum Teil erheblich zwischen einzelnen Individuen einer Art sowie zwischen den Arten, was Unterschiede in der potentiellen, jährlichen Kohlenstoffaufnahme nach sich zieht. Stressbedingungen, wie Hitze- Kälte- oder Trockenstress, können zu Veränderung von Fluoreszenzparametern ohne gleichzeitige Änderung des Pigmentgehaltes führen, wie auch die indirekte Bestimmung von mit Chl assoziierten Komponenten (Carotinoide, Chl a, Chl b) mittels optischer Bestimmung (durch die Veränderungen von Pigmentverhältnissen) beeinflussen.
Im Rahmen des Forschungsprojektes konnten, Modelle zur Berechnung von Blattpigmenten und Blattstickstoff aus optischem Messdaten, Veränderungen der photosynthetischen Funktionalität, sowie Referenzdaten für die zukünftig nutzbaren Eichenarten hinsichtlich artspezifischer und jahreszeitlicher Variabilität unter mitteleuropäischen Umweltbedingungen ermittelt werden, die eine Nutzung und Einordnung von zerstörungsfreien, optischen Messwerten zur Ermittlung von Vitalitätsunterschieden in Eichen ermöglichen.
Plastic pollution is a pervasive problem. In the environment, both the physical and chemical aspects of the material contribute to pollution. For instance, discarded plastic is useless waste that is fragmented upon degradation and so-called microplastics <5 mm are formed. Besides, the chemicals added into plastics are usually customized for specific functions, but these can easily transfer from the polymer into an ambient medium. This work examined both of these aspects. Moreover, the question of whether ecotoxicological effects are more likely to appear because of the microparticle properties or the chemicals transferring from the microplastics was addressed. A special focus was laid on the UV-weathering-induced chemical release.
First, conventional and biodegradable plastics made from fossil and bio-based resources were chosen. The different materials (pre-production and recycled pellets as well as final products)were weathered and their leachates evaluated in vitro. The leachates were analyzed with nontarget screening in order to measure the number of transferred chemicals. Plastics identified as toxic were subjected to further investigations in vivo. A biodegradable shampoo bottle was processed to microplastics and the particles’ physical and chemical properties were assessed with the freshwater worm Lumbriculus variegatus. Here, commonly used endpoints such as mortality, reproduction and weight were tested via different exposure routes. Moreover, the freshwater shrimp Neocaridina palmata was exposed to microplastic beads and fragments to clarify if the shape of the particles affects the ingestion and egestion, respectively. Thereafter, two materials that displayed the strongest toxic responses in vitro within the first study were weathered and leached. Finally, the shrimps were exposed to the leachates and the locomotor behavior was used as an ecologically relevant but less frequently studied endpoint.
The results of the studies highlight that plastics are chemically complex mixtures, containing a wide range of chemicals in terms of the number and functionality. These chemicals induced oxidative stress, baseline toxicity and endocrine activities. This shows that pellets represent a processing state that comprises chemically heterogenous materials. Moreover, it was shown that a degradation initiator is not necessarily relevant to trigger inherent substances to leach out from plastics. Despite this, the UV-weathering resulted in increasingly released chemicals and exacerbated the in vitro toxicities. Even plastics assessed as toxicologically harmless prior to weathering released toxic chemical mixtures once they were weathered. One recycled and all of the biodegradable plastics were toxicologically most concerning. This means that such materials are currently not better than conventional, virgin plastics in terms of their toxicity.
To clarify the source of the microplastic toxicity, L. variegatus was exposed to biodegradable microplastics. The particles were ingested by the worms and adversely affected the examined endpoints. In comparison, microplastics that were depleted from their chemicals via a solvent treatment were less toxic. Kaolin as a natural particle control was evaluated alongside and positively affected the weight of the worms. This emphasizes the ecological relevance of fine-sized matter for the test species. The chemicals extracted from the microplastics induced a 100% mortality. A chemical analysis of the material revealed two ecotoxicologically relevant biocides. The physically-mediated effects of the microplastics seemed to be less of a concern for the worms, which is probably linked to their adaptation to high concentrations of naturally occurring particles in the environment. However, the effects related to the chemicals of plastic cannot be ignored, especially for materials that are claimed to be environmentally friendly.
In the third study, the role of the particle shape in the gut passaging of N. palmata was studied. While the particle size was a determinant factor for the ingestion, the ingestion and egestion of the beads and fragments did not differ, respectively. The shrimps ingested less fragments when food was provided than in the absence of food. As for the worms, the shrimps are known to ingest many naturally occurring particles. Their unselective feeding behavior towards the particle shape could indicate that microplastics as a physical pollutant are negligible for the shrimps. That is why the chemicals of the two most toxic in vitro materials were tested with N. palmata. However, no trend towards elevated or reduced movements of the shrimps was observed, even though the leachates contained baseline toxicants. This shows that the in vitro toxicities of plastics are not necessarily indicative for effects to occur at the in vivo level...
Clean water is fundamental to human health and ecosystem integrity. However, water quality deteriorates due to novel anthropogenic pollutants present at microgram per liter concentrations in urban water cycles (termed micropollutants). Wastewater treatment plants (WWTP) have been identified as major point sources for aquatic (micro-)pollutants. Chemical and ecotoxicological analyses have shown that conventional biological WWTPs do not fully remove micropollutants and associated toxicities, which is often because of mobile, polar and/or recalcitrant compounds and transformation products (TPs). To minimize possible environmental risks, advanced wastewater treatment (AWWT) technologies could be a promising mitigation measure. Multiple processes are therefore being developed and evaluated such as ozonation and ozonation followed by granulated activated carbon (GAC) or biological filtration. Assessing the performance of these combined AWWTs was the focus the TransRisk project. Within this project, this thesis accomplished four major goals.
Firstly, the preparation of (waste)water samples was optimised for in vitro bioassays. Acidification, filtration and solid phase extraction (SPE) were tested for their impact on environmentally relevant in vitro endocrine activities, mutagenicity, genotoxicity and cytotoxicity. Significantly different outcomes of these assays were detected comparing neutral and acidified samples. Sample filtration had a lesser impact, but in some cases retention of particle-bound compounds could have caused significant toxicity losses. Out of three SPE sorbents the Telos C18/ENV at sample pH 2.5 extracted highest toxicity, some undetected in aqueous samples. These results indicate that sample preparation needs to be optimised for specific sample matrices and bioassays to avoid false-positive or -negative detects in effect-based analyses.
Secondly, the above listed in vitro toxicities were monitored in a protected region for drinking water production in South-West Germany (2012-2015). Out of 30 sampling sites surface water and groundwater were the least polluted. Nonetheless, a few groundwater samples induced high anti-estrogenic activity that prompted further monitoring. The latter included a waterworks in which no toxicity was detected. Hospital wastewater also had elevated in vitro toxicities and hospitals are, thus, relevant intervention points for source control. The biological WWTPs were effective in removing most of the detected toxicity, and the selected bioassays proved to be pertinent tools for water quality assessment and prioritisation of pollution hotspots.
Thirdly, the in vivo bioassay ISO10872 based on Caenorhabditis elegans (C. elegans) was adapted for this thesis. Using this model, a median effect concentration (EC50) for reproductive toxicity of the polycyclic aromatic hydrocarbon β-naphthoflavone (β- NF) of 114 µg/L was computed which is slightly lower than reported in the scientific literature. β-NF induced cyp-35A3::GFP (a biomarker in transgenic animals) in a time and concentration dependent manner (≤ 21.3–24 fold above controls). β-NF spiked wastewater samples supported earlier hypotheses on particle-bound pollutants. Reproductive toxicity (96 h) and cyp-35A3 induction (24 h) of biologically treated and/or ozonated wastewater extracts and growth promoting effects of GAC/biologically filtered ozonated wastewater extracts were observed. This suggested the presence of residual bioactive/toxic chemicals not included in the targeted chemical analysis. It also highlighted the importance of integrating multiple (apical and molecular) endpoints in wastewater assessments.
Fourthly, five in vitro and the adapted C. elegans bioassay were integrated into a wastewater quality evaluation (developed within TransRisk). Out of the five AWWT options, ozonation (at 1 g O3,applied/g DOC, HRT ~ 18 min) combined with nonaerated GAC filtration was rated most effective for toxicity removal. All five AWWTs largely removed estrogenic and (anti-)androgenic activities, but not anti-estrogenic activity and mutagenicity, which even increased during ozonation. This has been observed in related studies and points towards toxic TPs. These results also emphasized the need for implementing an effective post-treatment for ozonation. The results from a parallel in vivo study with Lumbriculus variegatus and Potamopyrgus antipodarum conducted on site at the WWTP (using flow through systems) were in accordance with the C. elegans results. In this context, it is suggested to further implement C. elegans as sensitive, feasible and ecologically relevant model.
In conclusion, this thesis shows how optimised sample preparation, long-term (in vitro) environmental monitoring, sensitive and ecologically relevant (in vivo) bioassays as well as innovative evaluation concepts, are pivotal in improving the removal of micropollutants and their toxicities with AWWTs. Future research should further develop and evaluate measures at sewer systems, conventional biological, tertiary and other advanced treatment technologies, as well as sociopolitical strategies (e.g., source control or natural conservation) and restoration projects. The effect-based tools optimised in this thesis will support assessing their success.
The European Community has set a milestone in the European water policy in 2000: all water directives and policies were united into one comprehensive document – the European Water Framework Directive (EU WFD). The EU WFD requires the monitoring of 45 priority substances, primarily in the water phase, which is not related to a substantial amount of chemicals available on the market worldwide (about 50,000). About 60% of these are human and environmentally toxic. Hence, the currently monitored 45 priority substances are not even close to being sufficient to provide a comprehensive picture of the actual chemical pollution in the aquatic environment.
Furthermore, the EU WFD in its original shape paid less attention to sediments as an important source and sink for chemical contamination. Under stable hydrological conditions, polluted old sediments are covered by less polluted younger sediments preventing erosion of deeper sediment layers and, therefore, the release of particle-bound contaminants. However, urbanization, deforestation, flooding, dredging, riverbed renaturation, and stormwater overflow basin releases can lead to an unpredictable release of particle-bound pollutants. Therefore, in 2008, sediments were added to the EU WFD as a monitoring matrix for substances that tend to accumulate there. As a result, after 18 years of the EU WFD, less than half of all European waterbodies reached a good ecological (40%) and chemical (38%) status.
One of the primary pollution sources in aquatic ecosystems are wastewater treatment plants (WWTPs). Advanced wastewater treatment by ozonation is promising to remove most micropollutants. However, the knowledge about the possible improvement of the receiving waterbody is rare. The latter aspects were the main reasons for the start of the DemO3AC project in 2014. The study area was located in the federal state of North Rhine-Westphalia (Germany). The study area included the Wurm River and its tributary, the Haarbach River. Both waterbodies act as receiving waterbodies for WWTPs. One of them is the Aachen-Soers WWTP (receiving waterbody: Wurm River), upgraded by full stream ozonation as an advanced effluent treatment. Therefore, the extensive investigation program within the DemO3AC project included an investigation of the ecological and chemical status of both receiving waterbodies and the investigation of a possible improvement of the Wurm River after implementing advanced effluent treatment.
The current study was a part of the DemO3AC project and covered the sediment toxicity and a possible impact of the ozonation on aquatic organisms in the receiving waterbody. Time-resolved sampling campaigns allowed investigations under different hydrological conditions, mainly determined by the weather. The first sampling campaign took place in June 2017 during a prolonged dry period with low water flow in the receiving waterbodies. The second sampling campaign was performed exactly one year later (June 2018) after a long rainy period and corresponding high-water levels. Full-stream ozonation at the Aachen-Soers WWTP had been in operation for half a year. Furthermore, a wide range of organic micropollutants was investigated in the effluent of the studied WWTPs to assess a possible hazard emerging from contaminants released into the receiving waterbody.
The study design was developed based on the holistic approach to assessing the ecotoxicological pollution of surface waterbodies. It included the detection of chemical compounds combined with effect-based methods to identify possible drivers of toxicity. The sediment's ecotoxicological assessment included studies on endocrine-disrupting activity, genotoxic and embryotoxic potentials. These endpoints were evaluated using in vitro and in vivo bioassays. In addition, sediments’ chemical profiling was performed using modern analytical chemistry techniques.
The genotoxic potential was investigated using the Ames fluctuation assay with Salmonella typhimurium bacterial strains TA98, TA100, YG1041, and YG1042, sensitive to different classes of compounds, and the Micronucleus assay as a eukaryotic assay with mammalian cells. A unique feature of the present study was the implementation of non-standard Salmonella typhimurium bacterial strains YG1041 and YG1042 in the Ames fluctuation assay. Moreover, a comprehensive genotoxicity ranking of chemical compounds identified in sediments was used and combined with statistical analysis to identify the drivers of genotoxicity. The results of this study were published in Shuliakevich et al. (2022a) (see also Annex 1), describing the mutagenic potential of all sampling sites, which was primarily driven by polycyclic aromatic hydrocarbons, nitroarenes, aromatic amines, and polycyclic heteroarenes. In addition, the rainwater overflow basin was identified as a significant source for particle-bound pollutants from untreated wastewater, suggesting its role as a possible source of genotoxic potential. The present study showed high sensitivity and applicability of non-standard Salmonella typhimurium bacterial strains YG1041 and YG1042 in the Ames fluctuation assay to assess the different classes of mutagenic compounds. A combination of effect-based methods and a chemical analysis was shown as a suitable tool for a genotoxic assessment of freshwater sediments.
The sediments' endocrine-disruptive activity was investigated using the cell-based reporter gene CALUX® assay. A simultaneous launch of the full-scale effluent ozonation at the Aachen-Soers WWTP was used for investigation of the entrance of the ozonated effluent into the Wurm River and the endocrine-disrupting activity in the water phase. A particular focus of the present study was the unique investigation of PAHs as possible drivers of the endocrine-disrupting activity in sediments of the Wurm River. The results of this study were laid down in the publication by Shuliakevich et al. (2022b) (see also Annex 2), describing variations in endocrine-disrupting activity in the Wurm River under different weather conditions. Briefly, under stable hydrological conditions in June 2017, the estrogenic and the antiandrogenic activities in sediments of the Wurm River were within the range of 0.03-0.1 ng E2 equivalents (eq.)/g dry weight sediment equivalents (dw SEQ) and 3.0-13.9 µg Flu eq./g dw SEQ, respectively. After extensive rain events in June 2018, the sediments' estrogenic and antiandrogenic activities were detected within the range of 0.06-0.2 ng E2 eq./g dw SEQ and 1.7-39.2 µg Flu eq./g de SEQ, respectively. Increased endocrine-disruptive activity (up to 0.2 ng E2 eq./g dw SEQ in ERα- and 39.2 µg Flu eq./g dw SEQ in anti-AR-CALUX® assays) in sediments downstream of the rainwater overflow basin suggested it as a possible source of pollution. A unique result of the second study was finding a positive correlation between measured particle-bound antiandrogenic activity and detected polyaromatic hydrocarbons (PAHs) ...
Biodiversity is threatened worldwide because of ongoing habitat loss and fragmentation, overexploitation, pollution, biological invasions and a changing global climate. Due to the major importance of biological diversity for modern human living, efficient conservation and management strategies are required to protect endangered habitats and species. For this purpose, ambitious multilateral agreements on regional and global scale were declared to prevent biodiversity loss.
Efficient biomonitoring methods are required to adequately implement these biodiversity conventions. Species monitoring as a core activity in biodiversity research is an effective tool to assess the status of species and trends within habitats. Data collection can be obtained with visual, electronic or genetic surveys. Still, these monitoring programs can be expensive, laborious and inefficient for accurate species assessments. New techniques based on environmental DNA (eDNA) allows for the detection of DNA traces in environmental samples (soil, sediment, water and air samples) and open up new possibilities for species monitoring. The eDNA methodology enables detection of single species in a qualitative (presence/absence) or (semi-) quantitative way. eDNA metabarcoding approaches can be an effective community structure assessment method.
This thesis, located at the interface between experimental and applied research, illustrates the suitability of the eDNA methodology in applied biomonitoring using the example of the water-borne crayfish plague pathogen Aphanomyces astaci (Schikora 1906). The obtained results provide new insights into A. astaci sporulation dynamics in natural water courses. A. astaci sporulation is influenced by seasonal variation of water temperatures and life history traits (molting, activity, mating) of infected crayfish. The results also imply a high transmission risk of A. astaci spores during the complete year. This thesis compares two eDNA methods, which are successfully and consistently detecting A. astaci spores. Each approach is suitable for different biomonitoring tasks due to the method-specific requirements. The obtained results also reveal spatial variation in A. astaci occurance in the tested water bodies. A. astaci spore estimates are positively correlated with population density and pathogen loads of captured A. astaci- positive crayfish. eDNA results show a downstream zoospore transport of up to three kilometres distance from a distribution hot spot area of A. astaci-infected crayfish. The eDNA methodology is helpful in gaining reliable information on A. astaci occurrence in large water bodies. This information is urgently needed to initiate efficient management decisions for the conservation of European crayfish species.
eDNA-based methods such as for A. astaci detection are a useful complement for conventional monitoring and should have a strong impact on conservation policy. eDNA methodology will be helpful for the practical implementation of the main aims of key conservation agreements and thus will make important contributions to biodiversity protection.
Angesichts heutiger Umweltprobleme ist die Stärkung positiver Mensch-Natur-Beziehungen wichtiger denn je. Zeitgenössische Umweltbildung zielt darauf ab, Motivation und Einstellungen zu fördern sowie eine grundlegende Wissensbasis zu schaffen (IUCN, UNEP, & WWF, 1991; Potter, 2010), um einen selbstbestimmten, verantwortungsvollen Umgang mit der Natur zu ermöglichen. Positiver Naturbezug und Umwelteinstellungen gelten als Basis für aktiven Umweltschutz. Direkte Naturerfahrungen gelten dabei als didaktische Möglichkeit, die Motivation für Umweltschutz zu festigen (Kaiser, Roczen, & Bogner, 2008). Einstellungen verändern sich im Laufe des Lebens und so kann das Alter eine wichtige Rolle bezüglich der Effektivität von Umweltbildungsprogrammen spielen (Ernst & Theimer, 2011). Auch Umweltwissen gilt als Grundlage von Umwelthandeln. Denn sinnliche Erfahrungen allein führen nicht zum Verständnis ökologischer Zusammenhänge (Frick, Kaiser, & Wilson, 2004; Liefländer, Bogner, Kibbe, & Kaiser, 2015). Die biologiedidaktische Forschung sieht Fakten-, Handlungs- und Effektivitäts-wissen als zentral für die Genese von Umwelthandeln (Frick, Kaiser, & Wilson, 2004). Isoliertes Fachwissen wiederum führt nach aktueller Erkenntnis auch nicht zur Entwicklung von Haltungen und Wertvorstellungen, welche unser Handeln beeinflussen (Barr, 2003; Finger, 2010; Leiserowitz, Kates, & Parris, 2005).
Bis heute sind altersbasierte Unterschiede bei Schülerinnen und Schülern bezüglich ihrer Naturverbundenheit und Umwelteinstellungen nicht hinreichend untersucht. Auch ist die nötige Dauer der Naturerfahrungen noch nicht nachgewiesen. Es gibt bislang keine Studie, die Umwelteinstellungen, -wissen und –handeln von Kindern verschiedener Regionen der Erde untersucht und Daten auf internationaler Ebene erhoben und ausgewertet hat. Die gezielte Integration der drei Umweltwissensarten in ein solch globales Umweltbildungsprojekt stellt eine zusätzliche bislang nicht angegangene Aufgabe dar. Die vorliegende Arbeit schließt diese Forschungslücken, indem sie auf internationaler Ebene jene Variablen mit einbezieht, die einen nahezu vollständigen Eindruck der Effektivität von Umweltbildung in verschiedenen Regionen, Sozialisationen und Altersklassen zulässt. So wird der Einfluss eines umfassenden Umweltbildungsprogramms auf Naturverbundenheit, Umwelteinstellungen und -wissen der verschiedenen Typen untersucht und ein Bezug zur eventuellen Veränderung des Umwelthandelns hergestellt. Dabei stehen sowohl traditionelle als noch unerforschte mögliche Einflussfaktoren im Fokus. Die Studie umfasst insgesamt 1454 Schülerinnen und Schüler aus Bangladesch, Malaysia, Deutschland und Singapur, die alle an dem Umweltbildungsprojekt „Global denken, lokal handeln – wir schützen unsere Umwelt!“ bzw. “Think global, act local – we protect our environment!“ teilgenommen haben.
Zur Messung der Naturverbundenheit diente Schulz’ INS-Skala (Inclusion of Nature in Self) (2002). Umwelteinstellungen wurden mit dem 2-MEV-Modell (Two Major Environmental Values) gemessen (Johnson & Manoli, 2011). Eine Skala zur Erhebung von Umweltwissen wurde eigens erstellt und hinsichtlich der drei Wissenstypen nochmals modelliert. Eine Skala zur Ermittlung von Umwelthandeln wurde auf Grundlage von Bögeholz (1999) erstellt. Alle Skalen waren Teil eines Fragebogens, welcher in Form eines Pre-, Post- und Follow-up-Test eingesetzt wurde. Kinder aus Parallelklassen, die nicht am Projekt teilnahmen, aber Klassenunterricht zu den jeweiligen Themen erhielten, dienten als Kontrollgruppen.
Die Ergebnisse bestätigen einen positiven Effekt außerschulischer Umweltbildung bezüglich der Entwicklung der untersuchten Variablen. So wurde nach der Teilnahme am eintägigen und auch nach dem fünftägigen Umweltbildungsprogramm eine signifikante Verstärkung des Naturbezugs gemessen, wohingegen die Kontrollgruppen keine messbare Veränderung zeigten. Jedoch nur die fünftägige Intervention führte auch zu nachhaltigen Veränderungen. Hierbei am stärksten beeinflusst wurden Kinder zwischen sieben und neun Jahren.
Bei der Untersuchung demographischer Einflussfaktoren auf Umwelteinstellung, -wissen und –handeln stellten sich das Wohnsitzland sowie die städtische bzw. ländliche Prägung der Wohngegend als entscheidend heraus. So waren dies die einflussreichsten Determinanten zur Vorhersage des Grundvorhandenseins sowie Veränderungen der untersuchten Variablen in Folge der Bildungsmaßnahme. Einzig bei der Entwicklung des Umwelthandelns schien die direkte Naturerfahrung unwesentlich, zeigten die Kontrollgruppen ähnlichen Wandel in ihrem aktiven Einsatz für die Umwelt. Im internationalen Vergleich scheint die komplexe Verkettung diverser einflussnehmender Faktoren, wie der Wohlstand des jeweiligen Staates, das generelle politische System sowie spezifische bildungspolitische Begebenheiten, den Erfolg von Umweltbildungsprogrammen mit zu bestimmen.
Die Daten zeigen, dass Faktenwissen Grundlage für Handlungs- und Effektivitätswissen ist. Alle Dimensionen wurden durch die Intervention signifikant gesteigert. Effektivitätswissen wuchs am stärksten. Auch das Umweltverhalten wurde positiv verstärkt. Jedoch ließen sich nur schwache Korrelationen zwischen den einzelnen Wissenstypen und Handeln feststellen. Zusammenfassend war das durchgeführte Bildungsprojekt erfolgreich in der Förderung von Naturverbundenheit sowie Umwelteinstellungen, -wissen und- handeln. Die Ergebnisse werden im Rahmen dieser Arbeit im Hinblick auf ihre Bedeutung für die schulische Umweltbildung sowie die didaktische Forschung erörtert.
Eine qualitative und quantitative Studie zum Einsatz der virtuellen Mikroskopie in der Schule
(2019)
Das Mikroskop stellt in der Alltagswelt ein Sinnbild für naturwissenschaftliches Arbeiten dar (Coleman 2009, Paulsen 2010). Im Bereich der Lehre eröffnet dieses Laborgerät das Eintauchen in die mikroskopische Dimension und besitzt eine wesentliche Rolle bei der damit verbundenen Erkenntnisgewinnung, insbesondere von funktionsmorphologischen Konzepten (Gropengießer & Kattmann 2008, Kremer 2002). Jedoch wird die Durchführung der klassischen Mikroskopie und damit die aktive Auseinandersetzung mit mikroskopischen Präparaten im schulischen (Biologie-)Unterricht durch verschiedene Faktoren erschwert. Zu den Limitierungen gehören beispielsweise die Verfügbarkeit geeigneter Mikroskope und Dauerpräparate, die aufwendige Vor- und Nachbereitungszeit sowie der zeitliche Aufwand bei der Herstellung hochwertiger mikroskopischer Frischpräparate. Die virtuelle Mikroskopie könnte diese Schwierigkeiten umgehen. Das virtuelle Mikroskop kann als eine Simulation verstanden werden, bei der die bildanalytischen Vorgehensweisen bei mikroskopischen Präparaten analog zur klassischen Mikroskopie nachvollzogen werden können (Gu & Oglivie 2005, Hentschel 2009). Hierbei umfasst das virtuelle Mikroskop ein Akquisitionssystem zum Einscannen und Digitalisieren mikroskopischer Präparate, einen Server zum Speichern und Bereitstellen der entstandenen virtuellen hochauflösenden Aufnahmen (WSI) sowie eine Bildbetrachtungssoftware auf einem Anwendungsrechner (Kalinski et al. 2006). Basierend auf einer Nutzerbefragung wurde eine Betrachtungssoftware programmiert, die hinsicht¬lich ihrer Benutzerfreundlichkeit und ihren Eigenschaften auf den schulischen Einsatz angepasst wurde. Um die Relevanz in diesem Anwendungsfeld zu testen, wurden die Untersuchungen der vorliegenden Arbeit sowohl im Schülerlabor Goethe BioLab als auch in der universitären Lehre der Abteilung für Didaktik der Biowissen¬schaften der Goethe–Universität Frankfurt am Main durchgeführt. Der Schülerlabortag „Blut und das virtuelle Mikroskop“ wurde entwickelt, um die computerbasierte virtuelle Mikroskopie mit Schülern ergänzend zur klassischen Mikroskopie in einem fachlichen Kontext anzuwenden und zu erforschen.
Beruhend auf der Vergleichbarkeit beider Mikroskopiemethoden (Paulsen et al. 2010) lagen die Forschungsschwerpunkte neben der Nutzung der Software durch Schülerinnen und Schülern auf einer gegenüberstellenden Beurteilung beider mikroskopischer Verfahren von Schülern und Lehramtsstudierenden. Es wurden in diesem Zusammenhang drei zentrale Forschungsfragen formuliert.
Die erste Forschungsfrage untersucht das Nutzerverhalten der Schüler (n = 123) bei der virtuellen Mikroskopie mittels automatisch generierter Datensätze während der Anwendung der Bildbetrachtungssoftware. Die Analyse der Anwendungsdaten zeigt, dass das mikroskopische Sehen, insbesondere das Fokussieren auf relevante Bildbereiche, im virtuellen Humanblutausstrich angewandt wurde.
Die zweite Forschungsfrage untersuchte das aktuelle Interesses bei Schülern (n = 293) im direkten Vergleich zwischen virtueller und klassischer Mikroskopie. Dabei wurde das aktuelle Interesse aufgrund des engen Zusammenhangs zum Lernen (vgl. Krapp 1992a) als Indikator der Lernwirksamkeit gewählt. Die Erhebung erfolgte mittels eines Fragebogens. Die Ergebnisse dieser Untersuchung zeigen, dass der Einsatz beider mikroskopischer Verfahren das aktuelle Interesse fördert, das emotionale und das wertbezogene Merkmal sich jedoch zugunsten der klassischen Mikroskopie signifikant unterscheiden.
Im Rahmen der dritten Forschungsfrage erfolgte eine Beurteilung der Vorteile virtueller Mikroskopie gegenüber der klassischen Mikroskopie von Schülern (n = 504) sowie Lehramtsstudierenden (n = 247). Hierbei diente ebenfalls ein Fragebogen als Grundlage der Erhebung. Die Auswertung zeigt, dass sowohl die Schüler als auch die Studierenden die Vorteile der virtuellen Mikroskopie klar erkennen. Es liegen jedoch signifikante Unterschiede zwischen den Versuchsgruppen vor. Die Schüler bewerten die Vorteile betreffend der Förderung von Lernprozessen, des Erkennens von Strukturen und des mikroskopischen Zeichnens höher.
Zusammenfassend bestärken die Ergebnisse dieser Studie die Ansicht, dass das virtuelle Mikroskop nicht als Ersatz, sondern als sinnvolle Ergänzung zu der klassischen Lichtmikroskopie angesehen werden sollte (Bloodgood et al. 2006, Berg et al. 2016, Braun & Kearns 2008, Hufnagl et al. 2012, Mione et al. 2013, Santiago 2018, Scoville & Buskirk 2007). Dabei sollte die vorliegende Arbeit als Einstieg verstanden werden, um bestehende Forschungslücken zu verkleinern, damit ein Transfer der virtuellen Mikroskopie in den schulischen Kontext möglichst lernwirksam erfolgen kann.
Die Endometriose ist eine gynäkologische Erkrankung, bei der epitheliale und stromale Zellen des Endometriums Läsionen außerhalb des Uterus bilden, die in ihrem Aufbau dem Endometrium gleichen. Diese Läsionen, sowie deren zyklische Proliferation, führen zu Schmerzen bei betroffenen Frauen. In isolierten, invasiven Epithelzellen (EEC145T) einer Endometriose-Läsion konnte die Expression von Shrew-1 gezeigt werden. Auch in anderen zellulären Zusammenhängen fördert die Expression von Shrew-1 den invasiven Phänotyp. Shrew-1 ist ein Transmembranprotein, das in Epithelzellen mit den Adhärenzverbindungen assoziiert ist und Interaktionen mit β-Catenin und E-Cadherin eingeht. In MCF7-Zellen fördert die Expression von Shrew-1 die EGF-induzierte Internalisierung von E-Cadherin, welche zur Verminderung der Zell-Zell-Adhäsion führt. In 12Z- und HT1080-Zellen konnte eine Interaktion mit CD147 gezeigt werden. CD147 fördert die Aktivität von MMPs und in Shrew-1-überexprimierenden HT1080-Zellen konnte eine erhöhte Aktivität der MMP9 gezeigt werden. Shrew-1 wirkt somit auf die Invasivität von Zellen und ist gleichzeitig Teil der Adhärenzverbindung. Aus diesem Grund wird Shrew-1 eine modulatorische Rolle in diesem Kontext zugeschrieben.
In immunhistologischen Färbungen von Shrew-1 und E-Cadherin konnte in Adenomyose-Läsionen eine inverse Expression der beiden Proteine in einigen epithelialen Zellen gezeigt werden, die im Endometrium nicht detektiert werden konnten. In den epithelialen Endometriose-Zelllinien 12Z und 49Z, die kein E-Cadherin exprimieren und äquivalent zu der Zelllinie EEC145T sind, führte die Herunterregulation von Shrew-1 (Shrew-1 KD) zur Reexpression von E-Cadherin. E-Cadherin ist in den 12Z Shrew-1 KD-Zellen an der Plasmamembran lokalisiert und interagiert mit β-Catenin, wodurch seine Assoziation mit den Adhärenzverbindungen wahrscheinlich ist. Die Herunterregulation von Shrew-1 führt zu einer verminderten Motilität und Invasivität der 12Z-Zellen, wobei die reduzierte Invasivität nicht alleine auf die Reexpression von E-Cadherin zurückgeführt werden kann. Es ist zu vermuten, dass das verminderte invasive Verhalten mit der ausbleibenden Interaktion von Shrew-1 mit CD147 zusammenhängt, welches die Aktivität von MMPs fördert.
Da Shrew-1 eine direkte Interaktion mit β-Catenin eingehen kann, ist es möglich, dass die Herunterregulation von Shrew-1 zu Veränderungen in der Lokalisation von β-Catenin und weiteren Proteinen, die mit den Adhärenzverbindungen assoziiert sind (p120 Catenin und Aktin), führen. Dies konnte jedoch nicht beobachtet werden. Eine verstärkte Lokalisation von Vinculin an den Enden von Aktin-Stressfasern sowohl in Zellausstülpungen als auch an Zell-Zell-Kontakten konnte in 12Z-Zellen nach der Herunterregulation von Shrew-1 beobachtet werden. Dies könnte eine Folge der E-Cadherin-Reexpression oder entscheidend für die Lokalisation von E-Cadherin an der Membran sein.
Die Reexpression von E-Cadherin, die in den 12Z Shrew-1 KD-Zellen auf mRNA- und Protein-Ebene nachgewiesen werden kann, erfolgt in den 12Z-Zellen vermutlich hauptsächlich über Veränderungen von Histon-Acetylierungen, da die Behandlung mit dem HDAC-Inhibitor TSA die Expression von E-Cadherin in den 12Z-Zellen induziert. Eine verstärkte H3K9-Acetylierung am CDH1-Promotor konnte in ChIP-Analysen in den 12Z Shrew-1 KD-Zellen gezeigt werden. Die gesteigerte Acetylierung resultiert vermutlich aus der verminderten Assoziation von HDAC1 und HDAC2 mit dem CDH1-Promotor in diesen Zellen. Eine Beteiligung der Repressoren Snail, Slug, Twist und ZEB1 an der Reexpression von E-Cadherin in den 12Z Shrew-1 KD-Zellen konnte nicht gezeigt werden. Ebenso scheinen Veränderungen am Methylierungsstatus des CDH1-Promotors nach der Herunterregulation von Shrew-1 nicht zu erfolgen.
TSA induziert auch in weiteren epithelialen Endometriose-Zelllinien (10Z und 49Z) die Expression von E-Cadherin. In stromalen Zellen führt hingegen weder TSA noch die Herunterregulation von Shrew-1 zur Expression von E-Cadherin (17B, 18B und 22B). Dies weist darauf hin, dass die Herunterregulation von Shrew-1 über die Veränderungen von Histon-Acetylierungen wirkt und dass dieser Mechanismus in epithelialen Endometriose-Zellen entscheidend ist. In den stromalen Zellen muss die Expression von E-Cadherin über einen anderen und/oder weitere Mechanismen blockiert sein.
Auch der Wnt-Signalweg scheint an der Reexpression von E-Cadherin in 12Z-Zellen beteiligt zu sein. Die Inhibierung der GSK3β (LiCl und SB216763) führt zur Expression von geringen Mengen an E-Cadherin. In 12Z Shrew-1 KD-Zellen führt die Stabilisierung von Axin (XAV939) zur verminderten Expression von E-Cadherin. Dies lässt darauf schließen, dass Shrew-1 auch einen Einfluss auf den Wnt-Signalweg hat, was vor allem durch dessen Interaktion mit β-Catenin wahrscheinlich ist.
Im Kindes- und Jugendalter gehoert das Rhabdomyosarkom zu den haeufigsten Weichteilsarkomen. Bisher belaeuft sich das Therapieverfahren auf chirurgische Entfernung, gefolgt von Chemotherapie, bzw. bei nicht-operablen Faellen auf Radiotherapie und Chemotherapie, jedoch haben sich die Ueberlebenschancen fuer Patienten mit einer Erkrankung in metastasiertem oder rezidiviertem Stadium trotz intensiver Forschung ueber mehrere Jahrzehnte hinweg kaum gebessert und bleiben bei unter 30%. Neue therapeutische Strategien versuchen das Immunsystem des Patienten zu modulieren und dieses gezielter oder aggressiver gegen Tumorzellen zu machen. Nebst direkter Injektion von Zytokinen oder Antikoerpern bietet die adoptive Immunzelltherapie einen vielversprechenden Ansatz. In der vorliegenden Arbeit lag der Fokus auf Natuerlichen Killer- (NK) Zellen, da diese ein hohes zytotoxisches Potential gegenueber Tumorzellen aufweisen. Eine der groessten Herausforderungen der NK-Zellforschung ist die Breitstellung ausreichender Mengen an NK-Zellen mit optimaler antitumoraler Funktion fuer den klinischen Einsatz. Viele aktuell erprobte NK-Zellexpansionsstrategien basieren auf der Verwendung von Hilfs- oder Feeder-Zellen (Versorgerzellen), die jedoch vor der Applikation in Patienten aus dem finalen Produkt entfernt werden muessen. In der vorliegenden Arbeit sollten Feeder-zellfreie NK-Zellexpansionsprotokolle unter Verwendung von Gammakettenzytokinen getestet werden.
Interleukin (IL-) 15 erwies sich dabei vor allem fuer die Vermehrung der NK-Zellen als besonders foerderlich. Im Vergleich dazu fielen die Expansionsraten mit IL-2 oder IL-21 geringer aus. Interessanterweise wurde der expansionsfoerdernde Effekt von IL-15 durch dauerhafte Anwesenheit von IL-21 im Kulturmedium gehemmt. Ein kurzer, dreitaegiger IL-21-Boost am Ende der Expansionsphase wirkte sich wiederum positiv auf die NK-Zellexpansionsraten aus. Zudem zeigte sich durch IL-21 ein vermehrtes Auftreten von NK-Zellen des reiferen CD16posCD56dim Phaenotyps, der die zytotoxische Funktion vermittelt. Bei Degranulationsuntersuchungen wurden eine IL-21-induzierte Exozytoseaktivitaet und die vermehrte Ausschuettung von Perforin und Granzym B, welche Apoptose in den Zielzellen ausloesen, beobachtet. Vor allem der dreitaegige Boost mit IL-21 bewirkte eine gesteigerte Zytotoxizitaet gegenueber Tumorzellen, insbesondere gegenueber Rhabdomyosarkomzellen.
Auf dieser Grundlage bot es sich an fuer die NK-Zellexpansion ein Zwei-Phasen-Protokoll anzuwenden, bestehend aus einer initialen Proliferationsphase mit IL-15 und einem anschliessendem IL-21-Boost, durch den die antitumorale Funktionalitaet der NK-Zellen gesteigert wurde. Dieses IL-15+21boost-Protokoll wurde mit anderen Kombinationen aus den Gammakettenzytokinen IL-2, IL-15 und IL-21 verglichen und stellte sich hinsichtlich der NK-Zellexpansionsraten, der Degranulationskapazitaet und der damit verbundenen Zytotoxizitaet als den anderen Protokollen ueberlegen heraus.
Zytokinexpandierte NK-Zellen zeigten eine hoehere Rezeptorexpression an ihren Oberflaechen als unstimulierte Zellen. Die Expansion mit dem IL-15+21boost-Protokoll bewirkte die hoechste Dichte des Todesrezeptors TRAIL, jedoch auch der inhibitorischen KIR2D-Rezeptorfamilie. Fuer andere Oberflaechenmarker ergab sich jeweils eine mittlere Expressionsdichte verglichen mit dem IL-15- bzw. dem IL-15+21-Expansionsprotokoll. Die Sekretion von proinflammatorischen Zytokinen wie Interferon-gamma (IFN-g) und Tumor-Nekrose-Faktor-alpha (TNF-a) wurde zudem verstaerkt durch IL-21 angeregt, aber ebenso die Sekretion des immunsupprimierenden IL-10.
Weiter wurden die zytoinexpandierten NK-Zellen zur UEberpruefung ihrer in vivo Funktionalitaet anhand eines praeklinischen Xenograftmodells unter Verwendung von NOD SCID IL-2-Rgamma-/- (NSG) Maeusen und der Technologie der in-vivo-Biolumineszenzbildgebung getestet. Dabei konnte beobachtet werden, dass die NK-Zellen das Wachstum luciferaseexprimierender humaner Rhabdomyosarkome verlangsamten. Die Wirksamkeit der IL-15+21boost-expandierten NK-Zellen zeigte sich vor allem in einem kombinierten Ansatz, bei dem die Tumore zunaechst mit ionisierender Strahlung behandelt wurden und residuale Rhabdomyosarkomzellen anschliessend durch den adoptiven Transfer von humanen NK-Zellen in ihrem Wachstum gehemmt waren, solange die NK-Zelltherapie andauerte. Somit stellte sich die Kombination aus Bestrahlung und NK-Zelltransfer als wirksamer im Einsatz gegen Rhabdomyosarkome heraus als die alleinige Behandlung der Tumore durch Radiotherapie.
Zusammengefasst konnte in dieser Arbeit ein NK-Zellexpansionsprotokoll entwickelt werden, dass durch den ausschliesslichen Einsatz von Gammakettenzytokinen zu einem funktionalen NK-Zellprodukt fuehrte, welches auch in vivo lytische Aktivitaet gegenueber Rhabdomyosarkomzellen aufwies.
Hämophilie A ist eine X-chromosomal rezessiv vererbte Krankheit, die aufgrund von Mutationen innerhalb des Gens von Gerinnungsfaktor VIII (FVIII) zum funktionellen Defekt oder zum Fehlen des körpereigenen FVIII führt. FVIII zirkuliert als Heterodimer und besteht aus einer schweren Kette mit der Domänenstruktur A1-A2-B und einer leichten Kette mit der Domänenstruktur A3-C1-C2. Bei Patienten unter Prophylaxe wird durch regelmäßige Substitution mit rekombinanten oder aus Plasma gewonnenen FVIII-Präparaten die Hämostase wiederhergestellt. Allerdings entwickeln hierbei etwa 30% der Patienten mit einer schweren Hämophilie eine FVIII-spezifische Immunantwort in Form von neutralisierenden Antikörpern (Inhibitoren). Die sogenannte Immuntoleranz-Therapie (engl. immune tolerance induction therapy, ITI) ist bisher die einzige etablierte Therapie, die zu einer dauerhaften Eradikation der FVIII-Inhibitoren und Induktion von Toleranz gegenüber FVIII führen kann. Die Therapie beruht auf einer meist täglichen Gabe hoher FVIII-Dosen, welche sich, je nach Behandlungsdauer, über Wochen bis hin zu Jahren erstrecken kann. Bei etwa 30% der Patienten ist diese Therapie nicht erfolgreich. Für solche Patienten besteht die Gefahr lebensbedrohlicher, unkontrollierbarer Blutungen und erheblicher Gelenkschäden.
Die spezifische Ansteuerung des Membran-gebundenen Immunglobulin G (mIg) des B-Zellrezeptors (BZR) mithilfe von Immuntoxinen ist eine mögliche Option zur selektiven Eliminierung FVIII-spezifischer B-Zellen und somit zur Eradikation von FVIII-Inhibitoren. Solche Immuntoxine bestehen aus einer zellbindenden und einer zytotoxischen Domäne, welche nach Internalisierung zur Apoptose der Zielzelle führen soll. Da FVIII aufgrund der Größe als zellbindende Domäne ungeeignet ist, beschäftigt sich die vorliegende Arbeit mit der Entwicklung und Evaluierung alternativer Immuntoxine zur selektiven Eliminierung FVIII-spezifischer B-Zellen. Die FVIII-spezifische Immunantwort ist zwar polyklonal, jedoch vor allem gegen A2- und die C2-Domäne gerichtet. Aus diesem Grund wurden die humane A2- und C2-Domäne (hA2, hC2) als zellbindende Domäne verwendet und jeweils genetisch an eine verkürzte Version des Exotoxin A (ETA) aus Pseudomonas aeruginosa fusioniert, bei welcher die natürliche zellbindende Domäne entfernt wurde. Die rekombinanten Proteine wurden bakteriell produziert und im Anschluss an die Aufreinigung biochemisch charakterisiert. Während das bakterielle Expressionssystem für hA2-ETA nicht geeignet war, konnte hC2-ETA neben weiteren Kontrollproteinen mit korrekter Konformation der hC2-Domäne hergestellt und aufgereinigt werden.
Die Fähigkeit zur selektiven Eliminierung hC2-spezifischer B-Zellen wurde im weiteren Verlauf sowohl in vitro mithilfe einer hC2-spezifischen Hybridomazelllinie als auch ex vivo und in vivo mithilfe von Splenozyten aus FVIII-immunisierten FVIII-knockout Mäusen untersucht.
Durch Inkubation der hC2-spezifischen Hybridomazelllinie mit hC2-ETA konnten ca. 38 % der Zellen eliminiert werden. Weitere Untersuchungen der Zelllinie ergaben, dass diese keinen vollständigen funktionalen B-Zellrezeptor auf der Oberfläche exprimierte, welcher für die Bindung und die korrekte Internalisierung des Immuntoxins notwendig ist. Aufgrund dessen eignet sich diese Zelllinie nicht als Modell für eine genauere Analyse der in vitro Eliminierungseffizienz von hC2-ETA.
Weitere Analysen mithilfe von Splenozyten aus FVIII-immunisierten FVIII-knockout Mäusen haben jedoch gezeigt, dass durch ex vivo Inkubation der Splenozyten mit hC2-ETA, alle hC2-spezifischen B-Zellen vollständig, selektiv und konzentrations-abhängig eliminiert werden konnten. Auch die mehrfache Applikation von hC2-ETA in FVIII-immunisierten FVIII-knockout Mäusen führte bei der Hälfte der Tiere zur vollständigen Eliminierung aller hC2-spezifischen B-Zellen. Eine Reduktion des hC2-spezifischen Antikörpersignals konnte nach Gabe von hC2-ETA in allen behandelten Tieren beobachtet werden. Die unvollständige Eliminierung in der Hälfte der Tiere ist vermutlich auf die Präsenz hC2-spezifischer Antikörper zurückzuführen, die einen Teil des applizierten Immuntoxins neutralisiert haben, sodass nicht alle hC2-spezifischen Gedächtnis-B-Zellen erreicht und eliminiert werden konnten. Um die Eliminierungseffizienz von hC2-ETA weiter zu erhöhen, müsste das Behandlungsprotokoll geändert werden. Sowohl eine Verlängerung des Behandlungszeitraums als auch eine kombinierte Therapie aus FVIII und hC2-ETA sollte zu einer erhöhten Bioverfügbarkeit des Toxins und dadurch zu einer gesteigerten Eliminierungseffizienz führen.
Die Ausweitung des hier vorgestellten Ansatzes auf weitere FVIII-Domänen ist generell möglich, jedoch muss hierzu ein alternatives Expressionssystem aufgrund des eukaryotischen Ursprungs von FVIII in Betracht gezogen werden. Die hier vorgestellten Ergebnisse zeigen dennoch, dass FVIII-Domänen-Immuntoxine ein wirkungsvolles Mittel sind, um FVIII-spezifische B-Zellen selektiv zu eliminieren. Die Anpassung der Gabe von FVIII-Domänen-Immuntoxinen an die individuelle Immunantwort des Patienten könnte das Auftreten von Nebenwirkungen minimieren. Außerdem könnte eine kombinierte Therapie aus ITI und FVIII-Domänen-Immuntoxinen die Zeit bis zur Induktion von Toleranz verkürzen und die Chancen für den generellen Therapieerfolg erhöhen.
Patients harboring mutations in the gene DEPDC5 often display variations of neurological diseases including epilepsy, autism spectrum disorders (ASD) and other neuro-architectural alterations. DEPDC5 protein has been identified as an amino acid sensor responsible for negatively regulating the mechanistic target of rapamycin (mTOR), a central regulator in cell growth and cell homeostasis. Often, mutations of the DEPDC5 protein result in mTOR hyperactivity leading to abnormal neuronal phenotypes and the generation of excitatory/inhibitory imbalances in animal models. Complete knockout (KO) of DEPDC5 results in death shortly after birth, while inhibition of mTOR activity recovers postnatal death (Marsan et al. 2016). However, heterozygous DEPDC5-KOs in animals have been variable in their disease phenotypes during adulthood indicating developmental differences between subspecies and early development mechanisms which could be impactful on the outcome of the diseases.
To understand the mechanisms underlying DEPDC5 mutations during early development, a novel primary human neural progenitor cell line extracted from fetal tissue was characterized during proliferation and differentiation. CRISPR-Cas9 induced mutations of the DEPDC5 gene resulted in hyperphosphorylation of mTOR signaling processes and rapid expansion of the neuronal population during differentiation. Analysis of transcriptome data identified deregulation amongst p53 signaling, ribosome biogenesis, nucleotide and lipid synthesis as well as protein degradation pathways due to loss of DEPDC5. Disease gene datasets identified a correlation between Tuberous Sclerosis mutations as being more closely associated with DEPDC5 mutations while also finding overlap with some ASD and epilepsy genes. By using the mTOR inhibitor rapamycin, a substantial amount of the deregulated gene network was recovered while also reversing rapid neuronal differentiation caused by loss of DEPDC5. Though we saw increased dendritic arborization and subsequent decreases in dendrite lengths and soma sizes, rapamycin failed to recover these effects suggesting mTOR independent processes produced by DEPDC5-KO. This study provides new insights on the relationship between mutations in DEPDC5 and the functional, genomic and deregulatory networks it intertwines in humans and highlights that the DEPDC5 associated pathomechanisms are not fully related to mTOR hyperactivation, but include independent processes. This also sheds light on the question why rapamycin treatment only partially restores DEPDC5 related phenotypes and gives insight on treatments for DEPDC5 patients.
To date, chemicals are used ubiquitous in everyday life and an increasing consumption of pharmaceuticals and personal care products and industrial chemicals results in an increased water pollution. Conventional wastewater treatment plants are not able to completely remove the variety of (polar) organic compounds from today’s wastewater and thus serve as constant key point sources for the unintentional release of (micro-)pollutants into the aquatic environment. Anthropogenic micropollutants are detectable in very low concentrations in almost every aquatic compartment and may cause adverse effects on aquatic organisms. Considering the current situation of water pollution and to enhance water quality with regard to environmental and human health, the implementation of advanced wastewater treatment technologies, such as ozonation and activated carbon filtration was extensively discussed and investigated in recent years. Yet, besides their advantages regarding the efficient removal of a variety of recalcitrant, organic compounds as well as pathogens from the wastewater, it is known that especially the treatment with ozone may lead to the formation of largely unknown ozonation by-products with often unknown toxicity and unknown threats to human and the environment. To address these topics the joint research project TransRisk aimed at the “characterization, communication and minimization of risks originating from emerging contaminants and pathogens in the water cycle”. Within this research project the present thesis focuses on the ecotoxicological investigation of emerging waterborne contaminants, including their potential transformation products (TPs). Additionally, focus was laid on the investigation of combined effects of anthropogenic contaminants and pathogens with effects especially on aquatic invertebrate organisms.
The potential ecotoxicological effects of the antiviral drug acyclovir and two of its structurally identified TPs, were investigated on three aquatic organisms (Raphidocelis subcapitata, Daphnia magna and embryos of Danio rerio). While the parent compound acyclovir caused no acute toxicity up to a tested concentration of 100 mg/l on any of the investigated organisms, both TPs were shown to exhibit an increased aquatic toxicity. Carboxy-acyclovir, the biodegradation product of acyclovir, significantly reduced reproduction of D. magna by 40% at 102 mg/l, and the ozonation product COFA significantly inhibited growth of green algae R. subcapitata (EC10 = 14.1 mg/l). In the present case, advanced wastewater treatment was shown to lead to the formation of TPs, that reveal a higher toxicity towards investigated organisms, than the parent compound. Results highlight the necessity of further research related to the topic of identification and characterization of TPs, formed during advanced wastewater treatment processes.
To investigate the potential reduction or enhancement of toxic effects of nine differently treated wastewater effluents, selected bioassays with Daphnia magna, Lumbriculus variegatus and Lemna minor were conducted in flow-through test systems on a pilot treatment plant. The different treatment processes included ozonation of conventional biological treatment, with subsequent filtration processes as well as membrane bioreactor treatment in combination with ozonation. While exposure to the conventionally treated wastewater did not result in significant impairing effects on D. magna and L. minor, a reduced abundance of L. variegatus (by up to 46%) was observed compared to the medium control. Subsequent ozonation and additional filtration of the wastewater enhanced water quality, visible in an improved performance of L. variegatus. In general, direct evidence for the formation of toxic TPs due to the advanced wastewater treatments was not found, at least not in concentrations high enough to cause measurable effects in the investigated test systems. Additionally, no evidence for immunotoxic effects of the investigated wastewater effluents were observed. Yet, study-site- and species-specific effects hindered the definite interpretation of results. That underline the importance of a suitable test battery consisting of representatives of different taxonomic groups and trophic levels, to ensure a comprehensive evaluation of the complex matrix of wastewater and to avoid false-negative or false-positive results.
With aim to improve knowledge regarding immunotoxicity in invertebrates, the potential immunotoxic effects of the immunosuppressive pharmaceutical cyclosporine A (CsA) were investigated by applying the host-parasite model system Daphnia magna – Pasteuria ramosa in an adapted host resistance assay. Co-exposure to CsA and Pasteuria synergistically affected long-term survival of D. magna. Additionally, the enhanced virulence of the pathogen upon chemical co-exposure was expressed in synergistically increased infection rates and an increased speed of Pasteuria-induced host sterilization. In conclusion, results provide evidence for a suppressed disease resistance in a chemically stressed invertebrate host, highlighting the importance of investigating the conjunction of environmental pollutants and pathogens in the environmental risk assessment of anthropogenic pollutants.
Cardiovascular diseases are still regarded as the main cause of death in the modern world. However, the generic term "cardiovascular diseases" is not uniformly defined. It essentially describes diseases of the cardiovascular system and includes diseases such as hypertension, arteriosclerosis, myocardial infarctions, heart failure, coronary heart diseases, rheumatic heart diseases and heart valve defects. In addition to the well-known risk factors such as obesity, smoking, hypercholesterolemia and lack of exercise, age is a further risk factor that plays an important role in the development of cardiovascular diseases. As the modern societies age; this becomes an increasing problem.
But why does the prevalence of cardiovascular diseases increase with age? In gen-eral, age-dependent changes at the cellular level are assumed to be responsible for the pathological changes in the cardiac and vascular tissues. Important mechanisms such as autophagy, oxidative stress, mitochondrial dysfunctions, genomic instability, cellular senescence and disturbances in signaling pathways of growth factors play a decisive role. In old age, myocardial hypertrophy occurs, which results in cardiac wall thickening and an altered geometry of the ventricle. Chronic inflammations, paracrine and age-dependent cell-intrinsic factors further lead to activation of cardiac fibro-blasts with increase cell proliferation, collagen secretion and matrix cross-linking. The consequences are interstitial and perivascular fibrosis, which stiffen the heart and blood vessels. Oxidative stress and inflammations additionally attack the blood ves-sels and impair endothelial function, which is further aggravated by possible pre-existing conditions such as diabetes mellitus and hypertension.
In the past decades, the main focus has therefore been on researching these age-dependent changes in the hope of better understanding cardiovascular ageing and developing possible regenerative interventions. By studying the repair mechanisms of other organs such as the lungs and the bone marrow, the endothelium in particular showed a high regenerative capacity, which influences the proliferation and cell func-tion of the surrounding cells.
For a long time, the general opinion was that the endothelium is only the internal lin-ing of blood and lymphatic vessels, as well as the heart chambers, which as a single-layer barrier guarantees the integrity of the blood vessels. However, endothelial cells are very heterogeneous, depending on the type of blood vessel and the type of tis-sue they serve. In addition to their barrier function, endothelial cells also regulate the exchange of substances between blood and tissue, stimulate the formation of new blood vessels and re-model existing vascular networks. They are also able to re-structure the extracellular matrix that surrounds them. They release not only matrix proteins, but also cytokines and growth factors into the extracellular space. On de-mand, these factors are then released and stimulate angiogenesis or cell prolifera-tion. In addition, the secretion of various matrix proteins not only stabilizes the cellu-lar neighborhood, but also regulates various cell functions.
By modelling the endothelial environment - the so-called vascular niche - endothelial cells are able to communicate with the surrounding cells. As a result, a regenerative effect of the vascular niche has already been described in various organs. In the liv-er, for example, it has been shown that increased concentrations of endothelial Ang2 and decreased endothelial activin A after partial hepatectomy stimulate the prolifera-tion of hepatocytes and thus liver regeneration. In the bone marrow, endothelial cells mobilize stem cells via nitric oxide and in the lungs, endothelial MMP14 releases growth factors from the extracellular matrix, which stimulate epithelial cell prolifera-tion after partial pneumectomy. Whether such a regenerative effect of the vascular niche also plays a role in the heart is largely unknown.
Since both the regenerative capacity of the heart and endothelial function decrease with age, the aim of this dissertation was to investigate the role of the vascular niche and endothelial cell communication in the aged heart. Human cell lines as well as mouse and artificial rat models were used for these investigations. Since this thesis is a cumulative dissertation with partially published papers, it is divided into three parts.
In the first part of this thesis, the transcriptional signature of secretory genes in the aged cardiac endothelium was studied. Perfused endothelial cells from hearts of young (12-week-old animals) and old mice (20-month-old animals) were isolated and used for bulk RNA sequencing. The two matrix proteins laminin β1 and β2 were among the top-regulated genes. While laminin β2 was particularly expressed in the young cardiac endothelium, laminin β1 was predominantly found in the old endotheli-um. This change in laminin expression was confirmed histologically at protein level and its autocrine function was investigated in vitro. To mimic the in vivo situation in vitro, cell culture dishes were coated with human recombinant laminin 421 or laminin 411 and sutured with human endothelial cells from the umbilical vein (HUVEC). Di-verse functional investigations showed that endothelial cells migrated and adhered poorly in the presence of laminin 411, while in Matrigel tube formation assays HU-VEC formed reduced endothelial networks when cultured on LM 411.
...
The growing number of infections with multi-resistant bacteria or the current COVID-19 pandemic put compounds with therapeutic properties into the public focus. Non-ribosomal peptides (NRPs) are natural products that are already marketed as antibiotics, cytotoxic agents or immunosuppressants. Their biological activities rely on the structural diversity including non-proteinogenic amino acids (AAs), heterocycles or modifications like methylation or acylation.
The biosynthesis of NRPs is carried out by non-ribosomal peptide synthetases (NRPSs). These multifunctional megaenzymes show a modular architecture like in an assembly-line. Each module is thereby responsible for the incorporation and modification of one AA and therefore contains different catalytic domains. The adenylation (A) domain recognizes and activates its specific substrate in an ATP-dependent manner which is transferred to a 4’-phosphopantetheine cofactor post-translationally attached to the thiolation (T) domain. Peptide bond formation between two T domain bound substrates catalysed by the condensation (C) domain transfers the growing peptide chain to the following module. Such a C-A-T module can be extended with optional domains to integrate structural diversity and a terminal thioesterase (TE) domain usually releases the peptide via hydrolysis or intramolecular attack of nucleophiles. Inspired by the modular architecture, NRPS engineering deals with the modification of NRPs in order to increase biological activities, circumvent bacterial resistances or create de novo peptides. This can be achieved by mutasynthesis or modification of the substrate binding pocket as well as single and multiple domain substitution. However, the few successful approaches led to impaired enzymes and did not establish a general applicable guideline. In the first publication as part of this work, the development of such a guideline comprising three rules is addressed. First, the A-T-C tridomain named exchange unit (XU) is seen as a catalytic unit instead of a module. When using them as building blocks, the C domain’s specificity for the AA of the following XU has to be considered as second rule. Third, a conserved WNATE motif within the C-A linker depicts the fusion point of the XUs. Upon heterologous expression of the cloned plasmids in E. coli and high performance liquid chromatography coupled mass spectrometry-based analysis of the extracts, the ambactin-producing NRPS from Xenorhabdus was reprogrammed with one and two XUs. This only leads to a moderate loss of production titre or an even higher one when the AA configuration was changed by introducing a dual condensation/epimerization (C/E) domain. The pentamodular GameXPeptide-producing NRPS was reconstructed using up to five XUs of four different NRPSs and even completely de novo synthetases were created. The second publication describes the exchange unit condensation domain (XUC) concept and relies on a fusion point between the two subdomains (N-terminal CDsub and C-terminal CAsub) of the C domain’s V-shaped pseudodimeric structure which generates A-T didomains with flanking CAsub and CDsub. These hybrid C domain-forming building blocks depict an improvement to the XU concept by avoiding the drawback of C domain specificity. This allows a more flexible NRPS engineering that can e.g. enable peptide library design. Furthermore, beside a combination of both concepts within one NRPS and a transfer to Bacillus NRPSs, the use of XUC with relaxed A domain specificity allowed further peptide modifications by introducing non-natural AAs. The third publication deals with aldehyde and alcohol-generating reductase (R) domains which depict an alternative for peptide release in NRPSs. A promoter exchange in X. indica identified a pyrazine-producing NRPS with a minimal architecture of an A, T and R domain and was therefore termed ATRed. R domains were additionally used in engineered NRPSs to produce pyrazinones and derivatives thereof by XU substitution although most constructs failed to show production. Beyond that, an R domain has been shown to replace a TE domain in wild type synthetases leading to slightly modified NRPs and the postulated biosynthesis was incidentally revised. Furthermore, an NRPS with terminal R domain was engineered to produce a free peptide aldehyde, which are known to be potent proteasome inhibitors. For the above mentioned ATReds, the presence of up to three coding regions was further identified in 20 different Xenorhabdus strains but only six of them were verified to produce pyrazines. All ATReds share variable sequence similarities among each other and were subsequently divided into three subtypes. One subtype is supposed to perform the pyrazine biosynthesis via a non-canonical catalytic triad.
Auf der Oberfläche von Erythrozyten, Thrombozyten und Neutrophilen befinden sich mehrere hundert verschiedene polymorphe, ungekoppelt vererbte Blutgruppenantigene. Dementsprechend birgt jede Bluttransfusion das Risiko einer Immunisierung gegen fremde Blutgruppenmerkmale. Auch während der Schwangerschaft können aufgrund väterlich vererbter Antigene Alloantikörper induziert werden. Deshalb muss das Blut vor jeder Transfusion oder während einer Schwangerschaft auf das Vorhandensein irregulärer erythrozytärer Antikörper untersucht werden. Dabei greifen die aktuellen diagnostischen Verfahren auf primäre, stabilisierte Testerythrozyten von Blutspendern zurück, deren relevante Blutgruppenantigene bekannt sind. Antikörperspezifitäten können anhand von Agglutinationsreaktionen der Testzellen mit dem zu untersuchenden Patientenplasma auf ein oder mehrere Antigene zurückgeführt werden. Ist jedoch ein Antikörper gegen ein häufiges, ein hochfrequentes oder ein nicht-polymorphes, ubiquitäres Antigen gerichtet, kann in Ermangelung Antigen-negativer Testzellen keine adäquate Diagnostik gewährleistet, die Verträglichkeit der Transfusion also nicht definitiv sichergestellt werden. Auch der medizinische Einsatz therapeutischer Antikörper, welche Antigene adressieren, die auch auf Erythrozyten exprimiert werden, führt zunehmend zu Problemen. Tests auf granulozytäre Antikörper sind mangelhaft bezüglich ihrer Robustheit, besitzen eine unzureichende Auflösung und sind zudem meist zeitaufwändig und daher teuer. Antikörper gegen humane Plättchenantigene spielen insbesondere in der Schwangerschaft eine Rolle; sie vermögen bei Neugeborenen thrombozytopenische Blutungen bis hin zu massiven Hirnblutungen zu verursachen, die zu schweren Entwicklungsstörungen führen können. Bisher erfolgt jedoch mangels geeigneter Reagenzien keine standardisierte pränatale Untersuchung auf thrombozytäre Antikörper. In dieser Arbeit wurde ein neuartiges Verfahren für die Identifikation und Differenzierung irregulärer Blutgruppenantikörper etabliert, welches auf gentechnisch hergestellten, xenogenen Testzellen basiert, die einzelne definierte humane Blutgruppenantigene auf ihrer Oberfläche präsentieren. Die nicht humanen Zellen co exprimieren Fluorochrome, anhand derer Antikörper-markierte Testzellen durchflusszytometrisch voneinander unterscheidbar sind. Weiterhin können die generierten Testzellen zur Depletion von Antikörpern aus polyagglutinierenden Plasmen unter Erhalt der anderen Antikörperspezifitäten verwendet werden. Diese Technologie könnte die konventionelle Diagnostik erheblich erleichtern und bietet zudem die Möglichkeit, therapeutische Antikörper (wie z. B. anti-CD38, anti CD47, etc.), die häufig zu Interferenzen mit der Routinediagnostik führen, spezifisch prädiagnostisch aus Patientenproben zu entfernen.
This dissertation aimed to shed light on changes of the epigenetic landscape in heart and skeletal muscle tissue of the turquoise Killifish N. furzeri, a novel, short-lived animal model for aging research. The following results could be obtained:
1. A global trend towards closed chromatin conformation could be observed; histone markers for H3K27me3, H3K9me3 and H4K20me3 accumulated in skeletal muscle tissue from old N. furzeri. Markers for open chromatin conformation such as H3K4me3, H3K9ac and H4K16ac decreased in old skeletal muscle tissue. In old hearts from N. furzeri an accumulation of H3K27me3 could be detected while H3K9ac was found to increase with age as well. mRNA expression levels of methylating enzymes were higher in skeletal muscle tissue from old N. furzeri when compared to expression levels in skeletal muscle tissue from young N. furzeri.
2. The shift of epigenetic pattern was accompanied by a change of gene expression. Via mRNA sequencing in collaboration with the MPI, Bad Nauheim it could be shown that genes associated with cell cycle and DNA repair were lower expressed in skeletal muscle tissue from old N. furzeri than in tissue from young N. furzeri. Genes, associated with inflammatory signaling and glycolysis, displayed increased mRNA levels in skeletal muscle tissue from old N. furzeri. These results could be confirmed by Western blot and qRT-PCR analyses.
3. Markers for DNA damage and senescence increased in skeletal muscle tissue from old N. furzeri.
4. Cells derived from young and old N. furzeri skeletal muscle could be isolated and cultured for many passages. These cells were a mix of different cell types with properties and features of the native tissue. They could be used for treatment with drugs and/small compounds modulating the epigenetic landscape via specific interference with methylating enzymes.
5. DNA methylation and hydroxy-methylation were found to go in different directions in skeletal muscle and heart tissue from N. furzeri: while increasing in skeletal muscle tissue, a both DNA modifications declined in heart tissue with age.
6. In the heart of N. furzeri microRNA expression changes with age were assed with sequencing in collaboration with the FLI, Jena. It could be demonstrated that miRNA expression is age-dependent. Particular focus was on miR-29 and its target genes: miR-29 was highly upregulated in heart and skeletal muscle tissue, while target genes such as collagens and dnmts were reduced with age in the heart of N. furzeri.
7. Cardiac function remained stable with age and no accumulation of collagens could be found when comparing hearts of young and old N. furzeri despite the increase of markers for oxidative stress.
8. Cell culture experiments with human cardiac fibroblasts revealed that miR-29 is upregulated with increasing age of the donor. In addition to that, it could be shown that miR-29 is positively regulated by oxidative stress.
9. A zebrafish mutant with modified expression of miR-29 that was created in collaboration with the SNS, Pisa, presented a severe hypoxic phenotype and an altered mRNA expression profile compared to wild type control zebrafish. Cardiac dysfunction and hypertrophy were observed as well as an increase in DNA methylation and collagens.
Taken together, it could be shown that the aging process in skeletal muscle and heart tissue from N. furzeri leads to a series of changes on epigenetic levels. It remains to be elucidated whether these changes are result or cause for further changes of mRNA expression, protein levels and pathophysiology, yet the N. furzeri represents a promising research model for further aging studies.
European pea crabs - taxonomy, morphology, and host-ecology (Crustacea: Brachyura: Pinnotheridae)
(2010)
Pinnotherids are small crabs symbiotic to a variety of invertebrates. The European species infest bivalves and sea squirts. Their way of life is parasitic and poses a threat to commercially exploited bivalves. While juveniles of both sexes still look very similar - being agile swimmers and partially free living - a metamorphosis takes place in the female after mating and results in a conspicuous sexual dimorphism. Thereafter, the female settles in its host definitely and is morphologically strongly adapted to the parasitic life phase. A very high reproductive output was demonstrated among several pea crab species infesting bivalves. Despite from that, hardly any information is present in the literature on the pinnotherids’ reproductive biology and the underlying morphology.
Due to their cryptic way of life, the sexual dimorphism, and the different morphotypes of the female, the taxonomy of the Pinnotheridae is a serious challenge. Two widely accepted species are recognized on European coasts: Pinnotheres pisum and Nepinnotheres pinnotheres. Pinnotheres pectunculi was so far only known from the bivalve Glycymeris glycymeris in its type locality Roscoff (France), while Pinnotheres ascidicola and Pinnotheres marioni were described as living exclusively in ascidians without careful comparison with the previously described species. In order to produce standardized comparative descriptions, pea crabs were collected and studied from different hosts and localities in the Northeast Atlantic and in the Mediterranean. Nepinnotheres pinnotheres and Pinnotheres pisum were redescribed with consideration to characters of female and male. According to our morphological analysis, Pinnotheres ascidicola and Pinnotheres marioni are junior synonyms of Nepinnotheres pinnotheres, whereas the status of Pinnotheres pectunculi as a valid species was ascertained. Important characters are the mouthparts, the male gonopods, and especially chelipeds that showed consistent characteristics among different crab stages of both sexes.
Based on our sampling, we estimated the host-range of the European species. Nepinnotheres pinnotheres lives in ascidians and in the pen shell Pinna nobilis. Pinnotheres pisum infests numerous bivalve species - Pinna nobilis included. For Pinnotheres pectunculi novel host records are presented, all from the bivalve family Veneridae. Furthermore, feeding of the Pinnotheres-species was observed. They use a setae comb ventrally on the claw to brush mucus (and the accumulated food particles) from the bivalve gills. Feeding strategies and host-ecology will be thoroughly discussed in consideration to other Pinnotheridae.
We investigated the reproductive systems of European pinnotherids by histological methods, scanning and transmission electron microscopy, and confocal laser scanning microscopy.
The Eubrachyura have internal fertilization: paired vaginas enlarge into storage structures, the spermathecae, which are connected to the ovaries by oviducts. Sperm is stored until the oocytes are mature and transported into the spermathecae, where fertilization takes place. In the investigated pinnotherids, the vagina is of the ‘concave pattern’. Musculature is attached alongside flexible parts of the vagina-wall to control the dimension of its lumen. The genital opening is closed by a muscular mobile operculum.
The spermatheca can be divided into two distinct regions by function and morphology. The ventral part includes the connection with vagina and oviduct and is regarded as the zone where fertilization takes place. It is lined with cuticle except where the oviduct enters the spermatheca by the ‘holocrine transfer tissue’. At ovulation, the oocytes have to pass through this multi-layered glandular epithelium, which has a holocrine mode secretion. The dorsal part of the spermatheca is lined by a highly secretory apocrine glandular epithelium, which was to date only found in fiddler crabs of the genus Uca.
The male internal reproductive system consists of paired testes and corresponding vasa deferentia. The sperm morphology of pinnotherids conforms to other thoracotremes, with slight differences between Nepinnotheres pinnotheres and Pinnotheres pisum. Spermatozoa become enveloped into spermatophores in the secretory proximal vas deferens. The medial vas deferens is strongly enlarged and stores spermatophores embedded in seminal plasma. The distal vas deferens holds tubular appendices, which extend into the ventral cephalothorax and slightly into the pleon. These appendices produce and store vast quantities of seminal plasma. The copulatory system of the Brachyura is formed by paired penes and two pairs of gonopods, which function in sperm transfer. In pinnotherids, the long first gonopods transfers the sperm mass to the female. It holds the ejaculatory canal inside, which opens proximally and distally. The second gonopod is solid, short and conical. During copulation, the penis and the second gonopod are inserted into the base of the tubular first gonopod. The second gonopod functions in the transport of the sperm mass inside the ejaculatory canal towards its distal opening. The specific shape of the second gonopod is strongly adapted for a sealing of the tubular first gonopod with longitudinal cuticle foldings that interlock inside the first gonopod. The presented results are discussed concerning their function in reproduction and in respect of the systematic account.
The role of secretion in sperm transfer, storage and fertilization among the Brachyura is still under debate. It is notable that structure and function of secretion are more complex in pinnotherids and probably more efficient than in other brachyuran crabs, which will be discussed, in view of the parasitic way of life and the high fecundity of pinnotherids.
Introduction:
The evolutionary patterns of symbiotic organisms are inferred using cophylogenetic methods. Congruent phylogenies indicate cospeciation or host-switches to closely-related hosts, whereas incongruent topologies indicate independent speciation. Recent studies suggest that coordinated speciation is a rare event, and may not occur even in the highly specialized associations. The cospeciation hypothesis was mainly tested for free-living mutualistic associations, such as plant-pollinator interactions, and host-parasitic systems but was rarely tested on obligate, mutualistic associations involving intimate physiological interactions. Symbionts with lower partner selectivity may not experience coordinated speciation due to frequent switching of partners. On the other hand, symbionts with high partner selectivity may influence each other’s evolution owing to the highly interdependent lifestyles. Symbiont association patterns are also influenced by habitat and it has been proposed that symbiotic interactions are stronger in warm regions as compared to cooler regions (also referred as latitudinal gradient of biotic specialization). This hypothesis however, has recently been challenged and it has been suggested that a gradient of biotic specialization may not exist at all. Reliable species concepts are a prerequisite for understanding the association and evolutionary patterns of symbiotic organisms. The species concepts of many groups traditionally relied on the morphological species concept, which may not be adequate for distinguishing species due to the: i) homoplasious nature of morphological characters, an due to the inability to distinguish cryptic species. Thus phylogenetic species concept along with coalescent-based species delimitation approaches, which utilize molecular data for inferring species boundaries have been used widely for resolving taxonomic relationships. Lichens are obligatory symbiotic associations consisting of a fungal partner (mycobiont) and one or more photosynthetic partners, algae, and/or cyanobacteria (photobionts). I used the lichen forming fungal genus Protoparmelia as my study system, which consists of ~25-30 previously described species inhabiting different habitats, from the arctic to the tropics. This makes Protoparmelia an ideal system to explore the association and evolutionary patterns across different macrohabitats.
Objectives:
The objectives of this thesis were to 1. Elucidate the phylogenetic position of Protoparmelia within Lecanorales, and infer the monophyly of Protoparmelia; 2. Understand species diversity within Protoparmelia s.str. using coalescent-based species delimitation approaches; and 3. To identify the Trebouxia species associated with Protoparmelia using phylogenetic and species delimitation approaches and to infer the association and cophylogenetic patterns Protoparmelia and Trebouxia in different macrohabitats.
Results and discussion:
Chapter 1: Taxonomic position of Protoparmelia
In the first part of this study I explored the taxonomic position of Protoparmelia within the order Lecanorales. Overall this study included 54 taxa from four families, sequenced at five loci (178 sequences). I found Protoparmelia to be polyphyletic and sister to Parmeliaceae.
Chapter 2: Multilocus phylogeny and species delimitation of Protoparmelia spp.
In this part of the study, I identified and delimited the Protoparmelia species forming a monophyletic clade sister to Parmeliaceae i.e., Protoparmelia sensu stricto group, based on the multilocus phylogeny and coalescent-based species delimitation approaches. I included 18 previously described and three unidentified Protoparmelia species, which represents ~70% of the total described species, and 73 other taxa, sequenced at six loci. I found that the sensu stricto group comprised of 25 supported clades instead of 12 previously described Protoparmelia species. I tested the speciation probabilities of these 25 clades using species delimitation softwares BP&P and spedeSTEM. I found nine previously unrecognized lineages in Protoparmelia and I propose the presence of at least 23 species for Protoparmelia s.str., in contrast to the 12 described species included in the study.
Chapter 3: Association and cophylogenetic patterns of Protoparmelia and its symbiotic partner Trebouxia
...
Die CXCR4/CXCL12-Achse ist von entscheidender Bedeutung für die Entstehung und Aufrechterhaltung einer gesunden, reifen Hämatopoese. Erstmals beschrieben wurde der später als CXCR4 bezeichnete Rezeptor 1996 allerdings als Co-Rezeptor für den Eintritt humaner HI-Viren in Lymphozyten. Ein großes Interesse bestand daraufhin darin, sowohl natürliche Inhibitoren des G-Protein gekoppelten Rezeptors zu identifizieren, als auch synthetische herzustellen, um einen Eintritt des Virus in den menschlichen Organismus zu verhindern bzw. seine Ausbreitung zu unterbinden. Ein natürlich vorkommender CXCR4-Ligand, der 2015 von Zirafi und Kollegen erstmals beschrieben wurde, fand sich im Hämofiltrat von Dialysepatienten. Der im weiteren Verlauf als EPI-X4 bezeichnete CXCR4-Antagonist wurde als Spaltprodukt von Albumin identifiziert, welches über viele Spezies hochkonserviert ist. Diese Eigenschaft interpretieren wir als Hinweis auf eine relevante physiologische Funktion des Peptids. Da die Halbwertszeit von natürlich vorkommendem EPI-X4 beim Menschen vermutlich sehr kurz ist, sind in vivo- und darauffolgende in vitro-Analysen schwierig durchzuführen. In-vitro-Spike-Analysen von synthetischem EPI-X4 in humanem Plasma ergaben eine Halbwertszeit von nur 17 Minuten. Die geringen auftretenden Konzentrationen erschweren die Problematik zusätzlich. In dieser Arbeit sollen deshalb im Mausmodell in vivo-Analysen durchgeführt werden, um die Effekte von potentiell entstehendem EPI-X4 in verschiedenen experimentellen Ansätzen aufzudecken. Ein probates, hier verwendetes Mittel, ist die Analyse einer Knock-out (KO)-Maus. Die für die Bindung an CXCR4 entscheidende Aminosäure von EPI-X4, das am N-Terminus gelegene Leucin, wurde durch Alanin ersetzt, welches die Entstehung von EPI-X4 unterbindet und zusätzlich dessen Bindung an CXCR4 verhindert. Mit Hilfe zweier Mausmodelle können nun Analysen im EPI-X4-defizienten Modell durchgeführt werden, die im Umkehrschluss Informationen über die organismische Wirkung von EPI-X4 beinhalten. Zunächst wurde in beiden Modellen die physiologisch normale reife und unreife Hämatopoese charakterisiert. Hierbei zeigte sich kein signifikanter systematischer Einfluss von EPI-X4 auf reife Leukozyten (WBC), lediglich eine leichte Lymphozytose in der HR-Ala-Variante. Im weiteren Verlauf der homöostatischen Analyse der Hämatopoese der Ala-EPI-X4-Mäuse zeigten sich keine signifikanten Unterschiede zu wildtypischen Mäusen. Sowohl reife als auch unreife Zellen zeigten, außer in der T- und B-Zelllinie, keine zahlenmäßigen oder funktionalen Auffälligkeiten, weder im Blut, noch in der Milz oder im Knochenmark. Analysen der Zellzyklusaktivität unterschiedlicher Unreifestufen wiesen ebenfalls keine Auffälligkeiten auf. Diese Daten einer normalen, von einer C57Bl/6-Maus zu erwartenden Ergebnisse dienten als Grundlage zur Bewertung und Analyse von durchgeführten hämatopoetischen Stressmodellen. Hierfür wurden
zunächst hämatopoetische Stamm- und Vorläuferzellen (HSPC) mobilisiert. In den angewandten Mobilisierungsmodellen fanden sich lediglich unter G-CSF-Behandlung im Knochenmark eine größere Anzahl Granulozyten, was auf einen Einfluss von EPI-X4 auf HSPC schließen lässt. Um potentielle Auswirkungen von EPI-X4 im Knochenmark weiter zu untersuchen, wurde ein weiteres Stressmodell gewählt, welches ebenfalls mutmaßlich die Bedingungen zur EPI-X4-Generierung schafft: Subletale Bestrahlung der Mäuse sorgt für Schäden an allen Zellarten im Knochenmark, es wird ein steriles entzündliches Milieu kreiert. Unter diesen Umständen wurde die Regeneration von Blutzellen analysiert. Es zeigten sich keine nennenswerten Unterschiede sowohl in der akuten Phase des Schadens als auch in regelmäßigen Blutentnahmen während der Regenerierung.
Die Beschreibung von natürlich vorkommendem EPI-X4 in Vaginal- und Rektalschleimhaut zeigt seine Entstehung an Schleimhautbarrieren auf. Ala-EPI-X4-Muse werden deshalb auf deren Durchlässigkeit untersucht: LPS-Konzentrationen als Marker für eindringende pathogene Bakterien wurden im Plasma untersucht. Hierbei zeigten sich keine Unterschiede zwischen den Gruppen, eine Störung scheint hier nicht vorzuliegen. Zusätzlich wurde die Zusammensetzung des Mikrobioms im Darm untersucht, da beschrieben wurde, dass sich Mikrobiom und die Integrität der Darmschleimhaut gegenseitig beeinflussen. Im Falle der EPI-X4-defizienten Mäuse liegt zwar keine offensichtliche pathologische Veränderung vor, dennoch konnte in männlichen HR-Ala-Mäusen die Abwesenheit des Proteobakteriums Parasutterella nachgewiesen werden. Um eine mögliche Defizienz der Barrierefunktion weiter zu testen, wurden zwei Stressmodelle gewählt: Zunächst wurde den Mäusen eine akute, sterile Peritonitis zugefügt, woraufhin die Anzahl und Zusammensetzung der ins Peritoneum einströmenden Leukozyten analysiert wird. Die Reaktion auf diesen Entzündungsprozess war nicht verändert. Ähnliche Ergebnisse zeigten sich auch in einem akuten Colitis-Stressmodell.
Insgesamt konnte in dieser Arbeit mithilfe zweier KO-Mausmodelle die Rolle von EPI-X4 in der Hämatopoese und der Immunologie von Mäusen beginnend charakterisiert werden. Die homöostatische Hämatopoese scheint kaum von EPI-X4 abhängig zu sein, lediglich die Zahl der B- und T-Zellen, insbesondere der regulatorischen T-Zellen, scheint beeinflusst. Damit einhergehend konnten Veränderungen in Zytokinlevels bei inflammatorischen Ereignissen gezeigt werden. Experimente zur beeinflussten, eventuell gestörten Barrierefunktion von Ala-EPI-X4-Mäusen zeigten vielversprechende Ansätze und sollten in Zukunft weiter analysiert werden.
The objectives of this thesis were to understand how distinct classes of cell types interact to shape oscillatory activity in cortical circuits of the turtle. We chose the turtle cortex as a model system for cortical computations for two reasons. One is that the phylogenetic position of turtles makes their cortex functionally and anatomically particularly interesting. The second is that reptilian brains present several unique experimental advantages. Turtles have a three-layered cortex that forms the dorsalmost part of their pallium and receives direct input from visual thalamus. Thus turtle cortex, while sharing several features with mammalian cortices, constitutes a simpler system for studying cortical computations and dynamics. Freshwater turtles are semiaquatic species, that dive for hours and hibernate for months without breathing. Their brains are adapted to these behaviors so that they can operate under severe anoxia. This property allows for ex vivo wholebrain and whole-cortex (”cortical slab”) preparations in vitro, enabling the use of many sophisticated techniques for monitoring activity in parallel.
I thus set out to utilize the advantages of our model system, by using optogenetic methods to reliably evoke oscillations in an ex vivo whole-cortex preparation while observing activity in parallel with planar multi-electrode arrays (MEA), linear silicon depth-electrodes and patch-clamp recording techniques. This required several technical aspects to be solved. Prior work in turtle cortex (Prechtl, 1994; Prechtl et al., 1997; Senseman and Robbins, 2002) indicated that visual stimuli evoke complex activity patterns (e. g. wave patterns) in dorsal cortex. The goal was to examine these dynamics in detail and to provide mechanistic explanations for them whenever possible. The recent advent of optogenetics, the development of microelectrode arrays, and the possibility to combine these techniques with classical electrophysiological approaches on a resistant, accessible and stable preparation led me to explore a number of technical avenues.
First I had to establish gene delivery methods in reptiles. I settled on recombinant viruses, and show results from several serotypes of adeno-associated virus (AAV), i lentivirus and rabies virus. I report successful gene expression of genes of interest with several subtypes of AAV, including the commonly used AAV2/1 and AAV2/5 serotypes. Second I had to find promoters enabling global and cell-type specific gene expression in reptiles. Ubiquitous high-yield promoters such as CAG/CB7 or CMV drive high levels of expression in turtles; cell-type specific promoters such as hSyn (expression limited to neurons) and CaMKIIa (expression limited exclusively o mostly to excitatory neurons) appear similarly biased in turtles. Other cell-type specific promoters reported in the literature (fNPY, fPV, fSST) failed to express in turtles.
A second major aspect of my work focused on electrophysiological recordings using microelectrode arrays and the interpretation of extracellular signals recorded from cortex in ex vivo preparations. We observed that spike signals produced by pyramidal and inhibitory neurons were very often followed by a slower potential. We identified these slower potentials as reflections of synaptic currents, and thus of the axonal projections of the neurons, at least within the deep layers of cortex. This also resulted in a means to classify neurons as excitatory or inhibitory with much higher reliability than classical methods (e. g. spike width). The final aspect of my work concerns the use of optogenetics to dissect the mechanisms of cortical oscillations and wave propagation. I show that oscillations can be induced by light in turtle cortex after transfection with AAV2/1 carrying the gene for channelrhodopsin 2 (ChR2). By using the CaMKIIa promoter, ChR2 induced currents are limited to LII/III excitatory cells; we can therefore control excitatory drive to cortical networks. If this drive is strong enough, layer III inhibitory interneurons are recruited and fire in a concerted fashion, silencing the excitatory population. The visually evoked 20 Hz oscillations observed in chronically recorded animals (Schneider, 2015) or in anaesthetized animals (Fournier et al., in press) thus appear to result from a feedback loop between E and I cells within layers II & III. Details of these interactions are being investigated but - layer I interneurons, by contrast, do not seem to be involved. By pulsing light I could control the frequency of the oscillations within a range of several Hz around the natural oscillation frequency. Above this range, cortex could only follow the stimulus at a fraction (1/2, 1/3,...) of the light pulse frequency. Using a digital micromirror device, I limited activation of the cortical networks spatially, enabling the study of wave propagation in this system.
Reptilian cortex offers a relatively simple model system for a reductionist and comparative strategy on understanding cortical computations and dynamics. Turtle dorsal cortex could thus give fundamental insights to the primordial organization tional, computational and functional principles of cortical networks. These insights are relevant to our understanding of mammalian brains and may prove valuable to decipher fundamental questions of modern neuroscience.
Exploring the in vivo subthreshold membrane activity of phasic firing in midbrain dopamine neurons
(2021)
Dopamine is a key neurotransmitter that serves several essential functions in daily behaviors such as locomotion, motivation, stimulus coding, and learning. Disrupted dopamine circuits can result in altered functions of these behaviors which can lead to motor and psychiatric symptoms and diseases. In the central nervous system, dopamine is primarily released by dopamine neurons located in the substantia nigra pars compacta (SNc) and ventral tegmental area (VTA) within the midbrain, where they signal behaviorally-relevant information to downstream structures by altering their firing patterns. Their “pacemaker” firing maintains baseline dopamine levels at projection sites, whereas phasic “burst” firing transiently elevates dopamine concentrations. Firing activity of dopamine neurons projecting to different brain regions controls the activation of distinct dopamine pathways and circuits. Therefore, characterization of how distinct firing patterns are generated in dopamine neuron populations will be necessary to further advance our understanding of dopamine circuits that encode environmental information and facilitate a behavior.
However, there is currently a large gap in the knowledge of biophysical mechanisms of phasic firing in dopamine neurons, as spontaneous burst firing is only observed in the intact brain, where access to intrinsic neuronal activity remains a challenge. So far, a series of highly-influential studies published in the 1980s by Grace and Bunney is the only available source of information on the intrinsic activity of midbrain dopamine neurons in vivo, in which sharp electrodes were used to penetrate dopamine neurons to record their intracellular activity. A novel approach is thus needed to fill in the gap. In vivo whole-cell patch-clamp method is a tool that enables access to a neuron’s intrinsic activity and subthreshold membrane potential dynamics in the intact brain. It has been used to record from neurons in superficial brain regions such as the cortex and hippocampus, and more recently in deeper regions such as the amygdala and brainstem, but has not yet been performed on midbrain dopamine neurons. Thus, the deep brain in vivo patch-clamp recording method was established in the lab in an attempt to investigate the subthreshold membrane potential dynamics of tonic and phasic firing in dopamine neurons in vivo.
The use of this method allowed the first in-depth examination of burst firing and its subthreshold membrane potential activity of in vivo midbrain dopamine neurons, which illuminated that firing activity and subthreshold membrane activity of dopamine neurons are very closely related. Furthermore, systematic characterization of subthreshold membrane patterns revealed that tonic and phasic firing patterns of in vivo dopamine neurons can be classified based on three distinct subthreshold membrane signatures: 1) tonic firing, characterized by stable, non-fluctuating subthreshold membrane potentials; 2) rebound bursting, characterized by prominent hyperpolarizations that initiate bursting; and 3) plateau bursting, characterized by transient, depolarized plateaus on which bursting terminates. The results thus demonstrated that different types of phasic firing are driven by distinct patterns of subthreshold membrane activity, which may potentially signal distinct types of information. Taken together, the deep brain in vivo patch-clamp technique can be used for the investigation of firing mechanisms of dopamine neurons in the intact brain and will help address open questions in the dopamine field, particularly regarding the biophysical mechanisms of burst firing in dopamine neurons that control behavior.
Humans and other primates are highly visual animals. Our daily visual activities such as recognizing familiar faces, interacting with objects, or reading, are supported by an extensive system of interacting brain areas. The interactions between the many individual nerve cells both within and between brain areas need to be coordinated. One possible solution to achieve flexible coordination between cells in the network is rhythmic activity, or oscillations. The focus of the thesis will be activity in the largest visual area, V1, in non-human primates. In V1, high-frequency activity, so-called gamma-band activity (“gamma”, ca. 30-90 Hz) can be frequently observed and has been suggested to play a role in coordinating activity in the visual system. In Chapter 1, the coordination problem, the primate visual system and gamma-band oscillations are introduced in detail. The following chapters explore the dependence of gamma on contextual influences. Does V1 use contextual information to optimize co-ordination? In the first part, the short-term consequences of repeated encounters with visual stimuli on V1 responses are explored (Chapters 2 and 3). Inspired by results from colored, naturalistic images in the first part, the second part tests the dependence of gamma on spatial and chromatic stimulus aspects (Chapters 4 and 5).
Stimulus repetition is a simple yet powerful way to tap into our brains’ ability to learn and adapt to our environment. Repeated presentation of a visual stimulus tends to decrease responses to this stimulus. Is this accompanied by changes in the coordination of brain activity? In Chapter 2, the stimulus-specificity of repetition effects on gamma was tested using naturalistic stimuli. V1 is most typically studied using black-and-white, artificial stimuli that are very familiar to the animals. Here, colored natural images were repeatedly presented that were initially novel to the animals, to provide a wider and more naturalistic range of stimulation. Both multi-unit spiking activity (MUA) and gamma showed stimulus-specific repetition effects. MUA responses de-creased most strongly for initial repetitions and less for later repetitions. In contrast, gamma could increase or decrease for initial repetitions, but tended to increase for later repetitions. This points to the operation of multiple plasticity mechanisms. One process may rapidly decrease MUA and gamma and be related to initial novelty or adaptation. The other increases gamma, is active for more repetitions, and could constitute a form of refinement of coordination over time. Moreover, based on the spacing of stimulus repetitions, stimulus memory in V1 persisted for tens of seconds.
In the following Chapter 3, the stimulus location specificity and persistence of the repetition effects for longer timescales were tested. To this end, the observation that the increase in gamma with repetition was strongest for the first tens of repetitions was used to test for location specificity and memory. Using simple artificial stimuli that were repeated many times at two alternating locations, both location specificity and memory on the order of minutes was observed. Due to the structure of the primate visual system, location specificity suggests that the repetition effects involve early to mid-level visual areas such as V1. Memory for previous stimulus presentations on the order of minutes has not been previously reported for V1 gamma. Taken together, these experiments demonstrate short-term plasticity of gamma that is stimulus- and location specific and persists on the timescale of minutes.
In Chapter 2, the average gamma-band response to the large, naturalistic stimuli was highly stimulus dependent. Relative increases in gamma-band activity scaled between tens and thousands of percent change depending on the stimulus. Particularly the color of the stimuli appeared to play a strong role, although the stimulus set was too limited and uncontrolled to draw strong conclusions. In Chapters 4 and 5, underlying mechanisms for the stimulus specificity of gamma were explored using more well-controlled, artificial stimuli that varied in color and spatial structure.
Much of vision relies on the analysis of spatial structure. Each nerve cell in V1 only responds to visual stimuli in a particular, small part of the visual field, its so-called “receptive field” (RF). Compared to isolated RF stimulation, nearby cells that are stimulated by a similar structure from different parts of visual space can show response decreases, commonly known as “surround suppression”, and may show coordinated activity in the gamma band. In Chapter 3, responses to large, uniformly colored disks are contrasted with responses to black or white (achromatic) disks. A first experiment showed that gamma-band responses were stronger for colored than achromatic stimuli, whereas MUA responses could decrease below baseline for colored stimuli. To test whether these phenomena were related to surround suppression, stimulus size was manipulated in a second experiment. When stimuli were of sufficient size to induce surround suppression, clear gamma-band responses emerged. Surround suppression and gamma were stronger for chromatic stimuli. However, the change of stimulus size could have changed not only surround suppression but also stimulus saliency. Therefore, in a third experiment, the overall size of the stimulus was kept constant, and the spatial structure of the stimulus was manipulated. In comparison to uniform, predictable stimulus structure, mismatches between the center of the stimulus and the surrounding visual space led to strong increases in MUA responses and strong de-creases in gamma-band activity. These effects were restricted to the recording sites with RFs at the mismatch location. These experiments underpin the strong role of both spatial structure and color for gamma in V1.
In Chapter 4, responses to different color hues are studied in more detail. Gamma response strength depended on hue, being strongest for red compared to blue and green stimuli when measured with a gray background. To better understand the underlying mechanisms of the differential responses, the spatio-temporal context in the form of the background color was manipulated. Background color had a strong influence on gamma strength. Using differently colored backgrounds, different parts of the color signaling pathways could be adapted. Response differences to different color hues could be explained well with a model that incorporates differences in adaptation between pathways involving long- compared to medium-wavelength cone signals.
Taken together, these experiments indicate a strong role of both spatial context (stimulus size and structure) and temporal context and drive (repetition, adaptation) for the generation of gamma-band activity in V1. Functional implications of these dependencies are considered in the final Chapter 6, and a role for gamma-band syn-chronization in a coding regime for visual inputs that generate strong drive and high predictability is suggested.
Fatty acids in oomycetes
(2021)
Es gibt für die Orientierung von Vögel ein allgemeingültiges Konzept, das Karte-Kompass-Prinzip (Kramer 1953, 1957): Der Karten-Schritt besteht darin, den eigenen Standort zu ermitteln und mit dem Ziel in Beziehung zu setzten. Damit wird die geografische Richtung bestimmt, die im Kompass-Schritt in eine konkrete Richtung umgesetzt wird. Für Beides nutzen Vögel auch das Magnetfeld der Erde; in der Karte als einen Faktor den Verlauf der Intensität, im Magnetkompass die Achse der Feldlinien. Der Magnetrezeptor, der die Karte mit Informationen versorgt, ist im Schnabel lokalisiert, der des Kompasses im Auge. Ich habe mich in meiner Arbeit darauf konzentriert, die zwei potenziellen Magnetrezeptoren der Vögel feinstrukturell und immunhistologisch weiter zu charakterisieren.
Für den Magnetkompass wird auf Grund des Radikalpaar-Modells angenommen, dass Cryptochrome die Rezeptormoleküle sein könnten (Ritz et al. 2000). Bei Vögeln sind vier Cryptochrome bekannt, allerdings muss das Rezeptormolekül des Magnetkompasses auch in seiner Lokalisation bestimmte Kriterien erfüllen. Die für meine Arbeit bedeutsamen Kriterien sind: (1) die gleiche Ausrichtung der Proteine in einer Rezeptorzelle und (2), dass die einzelnen Rezeptorzellen alle Raumrichtungen abdecken. Ich habe in meiner Arbeit Cryptochrom 1a (Cry1a) und Cryptochrom 1b (Cry1b) auf ihr Vorkommen in der Retina von Rotkehlchen (Erithacus rubecula) und Hühnern (Gallus gallus) untersucht. Cry1b befindet sich bei Rotkehlchen während der Zugzeit in den Ganglienzellen, in denen es teilweise an Membranen gebunden vorliegt, die jedoch keine bevorzugte Richtung haben. Somit erscheint mir Cry1b als Rezeptormolekül für den Magnetkompass als eher ungeeignet. Cry1b könnte, wie viele Cryptochrome, an der Steuerung von circadianen Rhythmen beteiligt sein. Cry1a hingegen ist bei beiden untersuchten Vogelarten in den UV/V-Zapfen an die Diskmembranen gebunden, was eine Ausrichtung ermöglicht. Die UV/V-Zapfen sind über die gesamte Retina gleichmäßig verteilt, und durch die sphärische Form des Auges decken die einzelnen Rezeptoren jede Raumrichtung ab. Somit erfüllt Cry1a die Bedingungen des Radikalpaar-Modells, und ich schließe daraus, dass es sich hierbei um das Rezeptormolekül des Magnetkompasses handeln könnte. Cry1a ändert nach Lichtabsorption wie viele Cryptochrome seine Konformation. Der von mir verwendete Antikörper bindet nur die lichtaktivierte Form des Proteins. In Versuchen, in denen Hühner verschiedenen monochromatischen Lichtern ausgesetzt wurden, zeigt sich, dass sich Cry1a in UV bis Gelb in lichtaktiviertem Zustand befindet. Dies stimmt sowohl mit der spektralen Empfindlichkeit des Magnetkompasses der Vögel als auch mit der des Flavins, des lichtsensitiven Teils des Cryptochroms, überein. Versuche mit grünem Licht lassen vorsichtige Rückschlüsse auf das für den Magnetkompass relevante Radikalpaar zu: so ist das Flavin erst im zweiten Oxidationsschritt grünlicht-sensitiv, und Cry1a ist nur nachweisbar, also lichtaktiviert, wenn der erste Schritt bereits im Hellen abgelaufen ist. Versuche in denen die Tiere vorab im Dunkeln waren, führen nicht zur erneuten Lichtaktivierung unter grünem Licht. Dies macht nur eines der beiden im Flavinzyklus entstehenden Radikalpaare wahrscheinlich, nämlich das in der Reoxidation entstehende, da das Radikalpaar im ersten Schritt der Oxidation unter Grün nicht entsteht.
In Bezug auf den Magnetrezeptor im Schnabel konnte bereits bei Tauben eine detaillierte Struktur beschrieben werden, die als Magnetrezeptor geeignet ist, nämlich Magnetit- bzw. Maghemit-Teilchen in Dendriten der Nerven (Fleissner et al. 2003). Auch Hühner haben eisenhaltige Strukturen im Oberschnabel, die in ihrer Eisenoxid-Zusammensetzung denen der Tauben entsprechen (Falkenberg et al. 2010). Ich konnte in meiner Arbeit zeigen, dass die eisenhaltigen Strukturen im Oberschnabel der adulten Hühner an oder in Nervenfasern liegen. Elektronenoptisch bestehen diese eisenhaltigen Strukturen im Nervengewebe bei Hühnern, wie bei Tauben beschrieben, aus einem 3-5 µm großen Vesikel, der von eisenhaltigen ‘Schuppen’ besetzt ist, aus circa 1 µm langen Plättchen und Kugeln mit einem Durchmesser von etwa 1 µm. Sie sind in Feldern angeordnet, in denen diese Zellstrukturen gleich ausgerichtet sind. In der Anzahl und Lokalisation der Felder der eisenhaltigen Dendriten gibt es Unterschiede zwischen Hühnern und Tauben, allerdings ist unklar, inwie¬weit dies zu Unterschieden in der Verarbeitung im Gehirn führt. Die Entwicklung der eisenhaltigen Dendriten der Hühner beginnt erst nach dem Schlupf, am Tag des Schlupfes haben Küken noch keine eisenhaltigen Strukturen, abgesehen von roten Blutkörperchen. In den ersten 5 Tagen werden eisenhaltige Makrophagen im frontalen Bereich des Schnabels gebildet, die anschließend wieder reduziert werden. Bei 12 Tage alten Hühnern werden diese auch im lateralen Bereich des Oberschnabels angelegt und ebenfalls dort bis Tag 21 wieder reduziert. 21 Tage alte Hühner haben nur noch wenige eisenhaltige Makrophagen, allerdings ein erstes Feld von eisenhaltigen Dendriten. Die Röntgenabsorption zeigt einen Unterschied in der Eisenoxid-Zusammensetzung zwischen eisenhaltigen Makrophagen und eisenhaltigen Dendriten. Es könnte sein, dass die eisenhaltigen Makrophagen an der Synthese der eisenhaltigen Dendriten beteiligt sind, da sie Eisen aufnehmen, aber auch wieder abgeben können und in demselben Zeitraum reduziert werden, wie die eisenhaltigen Dendriten aufgebaut werden.
Sowohl Tauben als auch Rotkehlchen haben sich phylogenetisch bereits vor 95 Millionen Jahren von den Hühnern abgespalten. Es gibt sowohl in der Lokalisation von Cry1a als auch in der Struktur der einzelnen eisenhaltigen Dendriten keine Unterschiede, so dass es sich bei den beiden Magnetrezeptoren der Vögel vermutlich um sehr alte Mechanismen handelt, die sich in der Evolution kaum verändert haben. Vermutlich sind sie vogelspezifisch, da es in dieser Hinsicht keine erkennbare Gemeinsamkeit mit anderen Wirbeltieren gibt.
Regulatory required, classical toxicity studies for environmental hazard assessment are costly, time consuming, and often lack mechanistic insights about the toxic mode of action induced through a compound. In addition, classical toxicological non-human animal tests raise serious ethical concerns and are not well suited for high throughput screening approaches. Molecular biomarker-based screenings could be a suitable alternative for identifying particular hazardous effects (e.g. endocrine disruption, developmental neurotoxicity) in non-target organisms at the molecular level. This, however, requires a better mechanistic understanding of different toxic modes of action (MoA) to describe characteristic molecular key events and respective markers.
Ecotoxicgenomics, which uses modern day omic technologies and systems biology approaches to study toxicological responses at the molecular level, are a promising new way for elucidating
the processes through which chemicals cause adverse effects in environmental organisms. In this context, this PhD study was designated to investigate and describe MoA-characteristic
ecotoxicogenomic signatures in three ecotoxicologically important aquatic model organisms of different trophic levels (Danio rerio, Daphnia magna and Lemna minor).
Applying non-target transcriptomic and proteomic methodologies post chemical exposure, the aim was to identify robust functional profiles and reliable biomarker candidates with potential
predictive properties to allow for a differentiation among different MoA in these organisms. For the sublethal exposure studies in the zebrafish embryo model (96 hpf), the acute fish embryo toxicity test guideline (OECD 236) was used as conceptual framework. As different test compounds with known MoA, the thyroid hormone 3,3′,5-triiodothyronine (T3) and the thyrostatic 6-propyl-2-thiouracil (6-PTU), as well as six nerve- and muscle-targeting insecticides (abamectin, carbaryl, chlorpyrifos, fipronil, imidacloprid and methoxychlor) were evaluated. Furthermore, a novel sublethal immune challenge assay in early zebrafish embryos (48 hpf) was evaluated for its potential to assess immuno-suppressive effects at the gene expression level. Therefore, toxicogenomic profiles after an immune response inducing stimulus with and without prior clobetasol propionate (CP) treatment were compared. For the aquatic invertebrate D. magna, the study was performed with previously determined low effect concentrations (EC5 & EC20) of fipronil and imidacloprid according to the acute immobilization test in water flea (OECD 202). The aim was to compare toxicogenomic signatures of the GABA-gated chloride channel blocker (fipronil) and the nAChR agonist (imidacloprid). With similar low effect concentrations, a shortened 3 day version of the growth inhibition test with L. minor (OECD 221) was conducted to find molecular profiles differentiating between photosynthesis and HMG-CoA reductase inhibitory effects. Here, the biological interpretation of the molecular stress response profiles in L. minor due to the lack of functional annotation of the reference genome was particularly challenging. Therefore, an annotation workflow was developed based on protein sequence homology predicted from the genomic reference sequences.
With this PhD work, it was shown how transcriptomic, proteomic and computational systems biology approaches can be coupled with aquatic toxicological tests, to gain important mechanistic insights into adverse effects at the molecular level. In general, for the different investigated adverse effects for the different organisms, biomarker candidates were identified, which describe a potential functional link between impaired gene expressions and previously reported apical effects. For the assessed chemicals in the zebrafish embryo model, biomarker candidates for thyroid disruption as well as developmental toxicity targeting the heart and central nervous system were described. The biomarkers derived from nerve- and muscletargeting insecticides were associated with three major affected processes: (1) cardiac muscle cell development and functioning, (2) oxygen transport and hypoxic stress and (3) neuronal development and plasticity. To our knowledge, this is the first study linking neurotoxic insecticide exposure and affected expression of important regulatory genes for heart muscle (tcap, actc2) and forebrain (npas4a) development in a vertebrate model. The proposed immunosuppression assay found CP to affect innate immune induction by attenuating the response of genes involved in antigen processing, TLR signalling, NF-КB signalling, and complement activation ...
Alzheimer’s disease (AD) is a common, age associated neurodegenerative disease that manifests as progressive dementia and is characterized by accumulation of the amyloid beta (Aβ) peptide which is a processing product of a transmembrane protein termed Alzheimer Amyloid Precursor Protein (APP). The Aβ peptide is generated by a sequential proteolytic processing of APP by two distinct proteases that are termed β- and γ-secretase. The β-secretase, also called BACE-1 or memapsin 2, belongs to the family of aspartyl proteases. BACE-1 evidently cleaves APP in an acidic endosomal compartment after endocytosis of APP, thereby facilitating Aβ peptide generation.
Sorting of transmembrane proteins is generally controlled by sorting signals in the cytoplasmic domains of the cargo proteins. The short cytoplasmic tail of BACE-1 with 23 amino acids contains a sorting signal of the acidic cluster, di-leucine (ACDL) type. The two Leu residues in this determinant are important for the clathrin mediated endocytosis of BACE-1, whereas the acidic residues together with the Leu are required for the endosomal sorting and recycling of BACE-1 back to the plasma membrane. The ACDL motif binds to the members of the GGA (Golgi-localized γ ear-containg ARF- binding proteins) family (GGA1-GGA3) that are involved in the sorting of BACE-1.
One of the major aims of this study was to address the role of flotillins in the intracellular sorting of BACE-1. This study shows that flotillin-1 directly binds to the di-leucine motif in the cytoplasmic tail of BACE-1, whereas flotillin-2 only shows an association mediated by flotillin-1. Flotillin-1 competes with GGA2 for the binding to BACE-1 tail, and thus influences the endosomal sorting of BACE-1. Importantly, depletion of flotillins results in an altered localization of the wildtype BACE-1, whereas the plasma membrane resident Leu to Ala (LLAA) mutant is not affected. Flotillin knockdown results in an accumulation of BACE-1, implicating reduced degradation and enhanced stability of this protease. Thus, flotillins appear to be important for the cellular targeting of BACE-1 and also influence the amyloidogenic processing of APP, as demonstrated by an increase in the amyloidogenic C-99 processing fragments.
When flotillin depleted cells were subjected to apoptotic stresses including Aβ25-35 synthetic peptide (inducer of the extrinsic apoptosis pathway) or several chemotherapeutic agents (staurosporine, brefeldin A, doxorubicin, carboplatin and paclitaxel: intrinsic apoptosis pathway) and cytotoxicity was determined, various apoptotic markers were activated in flotillin depleted cells. Caspase-3 and GGA3 are well accepted apoptosis markers and an enhanced caspase-3 cleavage was detected upon STS induced apoptosis in SH-SY5Y, HeLa, and HaCaT cell lines and increased GGA3 cleavage was observed in MCF7 cell line.
One of the major reasons for the apoptotic sensitivity in the absence of flotillins was a PI3K/Akt signaling defect. Neuroblastoma cells depleted of flotillins showed diminished levels of total Akt, phospho-Akt and phospho-ERK upon STS induced apoptosis. Since PI3K/Akt was the primary survival pathway affected upon STS induced apoptosis, ectopic expression of Akt in neuroblastoma cell line reduced caspase-3 cleavage and retarded apoptosis.
The direct downstream target of Akt is FOXO3a, whose localization was investigated in flotillin depleted cells. A major proportion of FOXO3a was localized in the nucleus of flotillin knockdown cells, implicating that FOXOs are active in these cells and subsequently trigger the transcription of death genes. Strikingly, an essential anti-apoptotic molecule and a major cancer target, Mcl-1, was inherently downregulated in flotillin knockdown cells. Mcl-1 is a chief member of the Bcl-2 family as it plays a pivotal role in cell survival and it is a critical protein in cancer therapeutics as suppression of Mcl-1 protein can curtail the survival and growth of tumorous cells.
Neuroblastoma cells were rescued from undergoing permanent damage due to STS induced apoptosis by overexpression of anti-apoptotic Bcl-2. Phorbol esters are well known PKC activators, and pre-treatment of neuroblastoma cells with phorbol esters along with staurosporine reduced caspase-3 cleavage.
These results demonstrate that absence of flotillins can sensitize cellular systems to apoptosis induction. The two main characteristics of cancer cells include resistance to apoptosis and unresponsiveness to chemotherapeutic agents. It is a well established fact that impaired apoptosis is central to tumour development. This study implicates that the downregulation of flotillin function can trigger cellular susceptibility and enhances apoptosis in response to conventional chemotherapeutic agents. Therefore, flotillins can serve as vital regulators in providing a more rational approach in molecular-targeted therapies for receding cancer growth and survival.
Cellular communication is a concept that can be explained as the transfer of signals or material (such as cytokines, ions, small molecules) between cells from the same or different type, across either short or long distances. Once this signal or material is received, it will, as a rule, promote a functional effect. Several routes, involved in this transfer, are well described and are of global importance for organ/tissue communication in an organism.
The brain interacts dynamically with the immune system, and the main route known to mediate this communication, is via the release of cytokines (by peripheral blood cells), which can then activate certain brain cell types, such as microglia, directly, or activate the vagus nerve transferring signals to neuronal populations in the brain. The communication between these two systems plays a key role in the pathophysiology of neurodegenerative diseases, and the mechanisms involved in this interaction are of central importance for understanding disease initiation and progression and search for therapeutic models.
The Momma lab previously addressed the mechanisms of interaction between the peripheral immune system and the brain by investigating cellular fusion of haematopoietic cells with neurons after inflammation. They addressed the question of whether this phenomenon also occurs under non-invasive conditions. To approach this problem, a genetic tracing model that relies on the Cre-Lox recombination system was used. Transgenic mice expressing Cre recombinase specifically in the haematopoietic lineage were crossed into a Cre-reporter background, thus all haematopoietic cells irreversibly express the reporter marker-gene EYFP. Using this model, EYFP was detected in non-haematopoietic tissues, suggesting the existence of a communication mechanism never described before. As cells containing two nuclei were never detected, fusion as a mechanism was excluded, suggesting that Cre reaches non-haematopoietic cells via a different signalling pathway. The Momma lab investigated whether the transfer of material through extracellular vesicles (EVs) could be behind this periphery-to-brain communication. Using the genetic mouse model, they were able to trace the transfer of Cre RNA via EVs between cells in vivo, generating the first in vivo evidence of functional RNA transfer by EVs between blood and brain.
The last decade has witnessed a rapid expansion of the field of EVs. Initially considered as waste disposal material, recent evidence has challenged this view. EVs are currently considered as a widespread intercellular communication system that can transport and transfer all types of biomolecules, from nucleic acids to lipids and proteins. However, several important questions are still under investigation. One of them is whether EVs are involved in brain pathophysiology, as inflammation plays an important role in onset and progression of neurodegenerative diseases and is well described in Parkinson Disease (PD). Based on preliminary data in a mouse, peripherally injected with a low dose of Lipopolysaccharide (LPS, an endotoxin found in the outer-membrane of Gram-negative bacteria, which causes an immune response), neurons and other cell population in the brain take up EVs from the periphery. Particularly, dopaminergic neurons from Substantia Nigra and Ventral Tegmental Area have been shown to receive functional RNA, transported through EVs, which can lead up to 20% of recombination. Furthermore, different neuronal populations from Hippocampus, Cortex and Cerebellum exhibit recombination, indicating a widespread signalling from blood to the brain. Therefore, the goal of my PhD thesis was to investigate the mechanisms of this transfer and the triggers that lead to EV uptake by neural cells in vivo both in pathological and physiological conditions.
In this project, the extent and function of EV-mediated signalling from blood to brain is explored in the context of peripheral inflammation and neurodegenerative diseases. Firstly, EVs isolated from WT mice were further characterized using size-exclusion chromatography (SEC), Western Blot (WB) and electron microscopy in order to extend the knowledge from previous work done in the Momma lab. Secondly, to expand on the biological relevance of the fact that inflammation is correlated with an increase in EV uptake, different approaches using the genetic murine tracing model were used. Recombination events from haematopoietic cells to the brain have been followed after peripheral injection of LPS. Peripheral inflammation caused by LPS injection led to widespread recombination events in the brain, specifically in microglia and neurons, including dopaminergic (DA) neurons. In contrast, astrocytes, oligodendrocytes and endothelial cells were never or very rarely recombined. Additionally, peripheral LPS injection in a murine model, where Cre is expressed only in erythrocytes, led to recombination events only in microglia, suggesting that the type of EV-secreting cell plays a role in the targeting of EVs to a specific cell population.
The genus Giraffa likely evolved around seven million years ago in Indo-Asia and spread over the Arabian-African land bridge into Eastern Africa. The oldest fossil of the African lineage was found in Kenya and dated to 7-5.4 Mya. Beside modern giraffe, four additional African species have likely existed (G. gracilis, G. pygmaea, G. stillei, and G. jumae). Based on their morphological similarities, G. gracilis is often considered to be the closest relative of the modern giraffe. Nevertheless, the phylogeny within the genus Giraffa is largely unresolved.
Modern giraffe (Giraffa sp.) have been neglected by the scientific community for a long time and still very little is known about their biology. Traditionally, present-day giraffe have been considered a single species (G. camelopardalis) which is divided into six to eleven subspecies, with nine subspecies being the most accepted classification. This classification was based on morphological differences and geographic ranges. However, recent genetic analyses found hidden diversity within Giraffa and proposed four genetically distinct giraffe species (G. camelopardalis, G. reticulata, G. tippelskirchi, G. giraffa) with presumably little gene flow among them.
Gene flow on a population level is the exchange of genetic information among populations facilitated by the migration of individuals between populations. Additionally, it is an important criterion to delineate species, because many species concepts, especially the Biological Species Concept, rely on the concept of reproductive isolation. Yet, new genetic methods are identifying an increasing number of species that show signs of introgressive hybridization or gene flow among them. Therefore, strict reproductive isolation cannot always be applied to delineate species, especially in young, probably still diverging, species such as giraffe.
Therefore, giraffe are ideal study organisms to investigate the level of gene flow in recently diverged species with adjacent or potentially overlapping ranges. Furthermore, their recent classification as “Vulnerable” by the IUCN and their unreliable distribution maps require the genetic evaluation of their population structure, distribution and conservation status.
In Publication 1 (Winter et al. (2018a), Ecological Genetics and Genomics, 7–8, 1–5), I studied the distribution and matrilineal population structure of Angolan giraffe (G. giraffa angolensis) using sequences from the cytochrome b gene (1,140 bp) and the mitochondrial control region for individuals from across their known range and beyond, and additionally including individuals from all known giraffe species and subspecies. The reconstruction of a phylogenetic tree and a mitochondrial haplotype network allowed to identify the most easterly known natural population of Angolan giraffe, a population that was previously assigned to their sister-subspecies South African giraffe (G. giraffa giraffa), indicating the limit of classification by morphology and geography. Furthermore, the analyses show that Namibia’s iconic desert-dwelling giraffe population is genetically distinct, even from the nearest population at Etosha National Park, suggesting very limited, if any, natural exchange of matrilines. Yet, no geographic barriers are known for this region that would prevent genetic exchange. Therefore, the two populations are likely on different evolutionary trajectories. Limited individuals with an Etosha haplotype further suggest that translocation of Etosha giraffe into the desert population had only a minor impact on the local population. Two separate haplogroups within Etosha National Park suggest an “out of Etosha” radiation of Angolan giraffe to the East followed by a later back-migration.
In Publication 2 (Winter et al. (2018b), Ecology and Evolution, 8(20), 10156–10165), I investigated the genetic population structure of giraffe across their range (n = 137) with focus on the amount of gene flow among the proposed giraffe species with a 3-fold increased set of nuclear introns (n = 21). Limited gene flow of less than one effective migrant per generation, even between the closely related northern (G. camelopardalis) and reticulated giraffe (G. reticulata) further supports the existence of four giraffe species by a different methodology, gene flow. This is significant because most species concepts build on reproductive isolation. Furthermore, this result is corroborated by four distinct major clades in a phylogenetic tree analysis, and distinct clusters in Principal Component Analysis and STRUCTURE analysis. All these analyses suggest a low level of genetic exchange among the four giraffe species and, therefore, a high degree of reproductive isolation in accordance with the Biological Species Concept (BSC). In Addition, only a single individual in 137 was identified as being potential of natural hybrid origin, which promotes the four-species concept further. ...
Fungal organisms, including the most common human pathogens Candida spp., are commensal organisms that are widely present as part of the human flora. Fungal infections are, most frequently, local infections that do not compromise the life of patients. However, mycotic diseases can be life-threatening if they become systemic infections. Systemic fungal infections have risen over the last three decades in parallel to the increased immune-compromised population as a consequence of diseases (e.g. HIV/AIDS) or therapeutic interventions that affect the immune system (e.g. chemotherapy for cancer treatment and immunosuppressors used for patients with organ transplants). This has resulted in the demand of new antifungal drugs that can eradicate the new infections caused by these opportunistic fungal pathogens. However, most of the current compounds have poor pharmaceutical properties such as narrow spectrum of activity, susceptibility to be extruded by efflux pumps or lack of specificity, which make them not suitable for human clinical applications. The treatment of fungal and parasitic infections has been traditionally difficult because the infective organisms are eukaryotic cells that share most of the pathways and enzymes with human cells. To avoid side effects and to develop a targeted therapy, the research has traditionally been centered on the very few enzymes and pathways existing in the infectious organism but absent in humans. Until now, antifungal therapeutic options are limited and are almost dominated by azole class of sterol biosynthesis inhibitors affecting the synthesis of ergosterol, a major constituent of the fungal cell membrane. Because human cells do not have a cell wall, the development of effective and safe antifungal agents has also been directed to enzymes required for the synthesis of the cell wall. Alternatively, it is theoretically possible to target enzymes that are present in fungal organisms and in humans, when: 1) sufficient selectivity can be achieved, and 2) inhibition of the fungal enzyme is lethal to the fungus but does not produce major side effects to humans. In this line, it would be ideal to evaluate the development of selective inhibitors of enzymes which are already known to be drug targets, like protein kinases.
In order to form an organ, cells need to take up specialized functions and tasks. Cellular specialization is guided by an interplay of chemical signals and physical forces, where one influences the other. One aspect in cellular identity is its shape, which e.g. defines how susceptible the cell may be to intercellular signaling or in which section of the cell cycle it is and therefore can tell us about its current state. Shape changes are introduced by motor proteins that are controlled and activated in a locally confined manner. For my thesis, I was interested to understand better how cellular shape and geometry impacts downstream cell and organ development. What happens if a cell cant transition to a specific shape? How does it affect tissue structure? How does it affect further development?
One regulator of motor proteins like non-muscle myosin is Shroom3, which recently has been been shown to be expressed and involved in the development of the zebrafish lateral line organ (1 ). Development of the lateral line occurs through a migrating cluster of initially about 150 cells, the posterior lateral line primordium (pLLP), which migrates from the anterior (head) to the posterior (tail) while depositing cell clusters in a regular pattern. Literature on development of the lateral line suggests that in order for a cell cluster to be deposited from the pLLP, rosette formation is a key requirement. Therefore our expectation from the shroom3 mutant was that the number of clusters deposited was significantly reduced. To our surprise, when we first inspected the end of migration lateral line phenotype we found many individuals with a significant increase in cell clusters deposited.
This made us re-think the role of Shroom3 during rosette assembly and the processes its involved in.
To study the effects of Shroom3 on lateral line development, a mutant line was generated and crossed with various transgenic lines which express fluorescently labeled proteins that locate to organelles such as the plasmamembrane or the nucleus. Following, the mutant with its fluorescent labels was microscopically imaged under different conditions to quantify and analyze various cell-morphometric features. Even though the zebrafish is a popular model organism and its perfectly suited for developmental biology and advanced microscopy, there were no methods that would allow for a standardized and more automated pipeline of data acquisition and processing.
Therefore, in order to accurately quantify the morphogenic processes Shroom3 is involved in, I developed a new toolset that significantly improved and facilitated my research. The toolset consists of (1) a new sample mounting method that is based on a 3D agarose gel that increases the number of embryos that can be mounted and imaged at once and speeds up the imaging process significantly (2) for subseqent image analysis I developed four programs that automate the process and therefore make the results much more reproducible and the analysis much more efficient. The first program is used for end of migration analyses, to deduce the pattern, count and size of Lateral Line cell clusters. The second is used not for end of migration, but for migration analyses (on timelapse recordings). Besides this it also prepares the images for more advanced downstream migration analyses and allows to analyse fluorescence signal on a second channel. The third program is used to analyse the pLLP only at high spatial resolution and to deduce the cell count, 3D cell morphometrics (like the volume) and cell orientation. The fourth program finally is used downstream of the second and third program and is capable of detecting and comparing them with the look of wildtype rosettes.
Here I show that in absence of Shroom3 rosette formation in the migrating pLLP is destabilized leading to facilitated cell cluster deposition and I show how this might be related to traction forces due to a possible interdependence of pLLP acceleration and speed of migration. Furthermore I show that apical constriction and rosette formation is not blocked in Shroom3 deficient embryos, but that larger rosettes are fragmented into many smaller ones. Finally, I give an outlook on how the absense of Shroom3 and hence the absense of morphological changes may deregulate gene transcription by elevating the levels Atoh1a, a transcription factor necessary for hair cell development.
My results and methodology demonstrate the importance of morphology in guiding developmental processes and how rather small morphological changes on the cellular level can impact further development significantly. My work also shows how powerful modern genetics, imaging and image analysis are and how diverse they are in terms of range of questions they are capable of answering. The methods and tools I developed prepare the ground for at least three quarters of the analyses I carried out and together with the documentation and data I provide, they are highly reproducible. In that regard I am especially happy that one of my developments, an improved sample preparation method, is already used by many different labs all over the world helping them to make their results more reproducible.
Genetic and genomic tools have provided researchers with the opportunity to address fundamental questions regarding the reintroduction of species into their historical range with greater precision than ever before. Reintroduction has been employed as a conservation method to return locally extinct species to their native range for decades. However, it remains unknown how genetic factors may impact population establishment and persistence at the population and metapopulation level in the short- and long-term. Genetic methods are capable of producing datasets from many individuals, even when only low quality DNA can be collected. These methods offer an avenue to investigate unanswered questions in reintroduction biology, which is vital to provide evidence based management strategies for future projects. The Eurasian lynx (Lynx lynx) and European wildcat (Felis silvestris) are elusive carnivores native to Eurasia and have been the subject of multiple reintroduction attempts into their native range. During the 19th and 20th century, the Eurasian lynx was extirpated from West and Central Europe due to increasing habitat fragmentation and persecution. Similarly, the European wildcat was the subject of human persecution, residing in a few refugia in West and Central Europe. After legal protection in the 1950s, subsequent reintroduction projects of both species began in the 1970s and 1980s and continue to the present. Despite this large focus on species conservation, little attention has been given to the consequences these reintroductions have on the genetic composition of the reintroduced populations and if the populations have a chance of persisting in the long term. These species have not yet benefited from the large range of genetic and genomic techniques currently available to non-model organisms, leaving many fundamental aspects of their reintroduction poorly understood. In my dissertation, I investigate demography, population structure, genetic diversity and inbreeding at the population and metapopulation level in both species. In the introduction, which lays the foundation for the subsequent chapters of this PHD, I provide background on reintroduction, its role in conservation and the genetic consequences on populations, especially populations of apex and mesocarnivores. In Publication I, I investigated the reemergence of the European wildcat in a low mountain region in Germany using fine-scale spatial analysis. I found that the reintroduced population has persisted and merged with an expanding natural population. The reintroduced population showed no genetic differentiation from the natural population suggesting there is a good chance this population has retained sufficient genetic diversity despite reintroduction. In Publication II, I tracked population development and genetic diversity over 15 years in a reintroduced lynx population to determine the genetic ramifications on a temporal scale. I found slow genetic erosion after a period of outbreeding, which fits in line with other reintroduced taxa sharing similar demographic histories. I also found the number of genetic founders to be a fraction of the total released individuals, indicating that reintroduced populations of elusive carnivores may have fewer founder individuals than previously thought. In Publication III, I sampled all surviving lynx reintroductions in West and Central Europe as well as 11 natural populations to compare levels of genetic diversity and inbreeding across the species distribution. I found that all reintroduced populations have lower genetic variability and higher inbreeding than natural populations, which urgently requires further translocations to mitigate possible negative consequences. These translocations could stem from other reintroduced populations or from surrounding natural populations. The results contribute to a growing body of evidence indicating that inbreeding is likely to be more prevalent in wild populations than previously understood. Finally, in the discussion I explore how genetic methods can be applied to post-reintroduction monitoring of felid species to illuminate questions relating to genetic composition after release. The methods employed in these studies and in future work will be highly dependent on the research questions posed. Additionally, I investigate the drivers of the observed genetic patterns including founder size, source population, environmental factors, and population growth. I found that genetic diversity loss patterns across these two felid species are not clearly defined, however, management actions can be taken to mitigate the negative effects of reintroductions. These management actions include further translocation, introducing a sufficient number of released individuals and situating reintroductions adjacent to natural populations. All of these actions can minimize genetic drift and inbreeding, two factors which negatively impact small populations. This thesis further supports mounting evidence that genetic considerations should be assessed before releasing individuals, which allows for incorporation of scientific evidence into the planning process thereby increasing the overall success of reintroduction projects. Ultimately, the resources developed during this dissertation provide a solid baseline and foundation for future work regarding the consequences of reintroductions. This is especially important as an increasing number of species are at risk of extinction and reintroductions of both the European wildcat and Eurasian lynx, as well as many others, are planned in the coming years.
The existence of all living organisms depends on their multidimensional adjustment to the conditions of the environment in which they live. Organisms must constantly deal with not only abiotic stress factors (such as water availability or extreme temperatures), but also with various biotic interactions (the competition between different organisms, both intraspecific and interspecies). When there is a consensus between an organism and the environment it means that this organism is well adjusted and increases its probability of survival.
Symbiotic organisms possess the ability to establish an intimate interaction with another species (symbiont) that provides benefits for survival. Organisms that are involved in obligate symbiosis may adapt to a new environment by switching to another symbiotic partner that is locally better adapted; or by reshuffling symbiont communities present in the holobiont. This ability potentially gives them the opportunity to flexibly react to changing environmental conditions.
In this thesis I studied the genetic diversity and geographic distribution of symbiont lineages in a lichen symbiosis to better understand environmental adaptation in symbiotic systems. Lichens are symbiotic associations of photobionts (one or several green-algal species or cyanobacteria), filamentous mycobionts (lichen-forming fungi) and co-inhabiting symbiotic microorganisms (lichen-associated bacteria, endolichenic fungi, and basidiomycete yeast). The coccoid green algae of the genus Trebouxia are the most common and the most studied lichen photobionts. However, the lack of formal Trebouxia taxonomy impedes our understanding of this photobiont diversity.
Different species of mycobionts may share the same photobionts and a single species of mycobiont may associate with multiple, genetically different photobionts. Interactions among symbionts are not random and are constrained by evolutionary and environmental processes. The ability to associate with specific symbiotic partner is considered as a lichen strategy to facilitate adaptation to the constantly changing environments.
The objectives of this thesis were to 1. Elucidate the intraspecific diversity of fungal and algal symbionts in the lichen Umbilicaria pustulata, given a range-wide (Europe-wide) sampling; 2. Evaluate species delimitation in trebouxioid photobionts based on molecular data, and 3. Quantify the climatic niches of photobiont lineages within U. pustulata, to establish whether the association with particular photobionts may modify the range and ecological niche of this lichen.
The main findings of this thesis are:
1. The genetic diversity within trebouxoid photobiont of U. pustulata is higher than within the mycobiont. The most variable photobiont loci are nrITS rDNA, psbJ-L, and COX2. RbcL is the least variable photobiont locus. The most variable mycobiont loci are MCM7 and TSR1. This study shows a lack of genetic variability in the mycobiont loci EF1, nrITS rDNA, RPB1, and RPB2.
2. U. pustulata shows a low level of selectivity and is associated with numerous (most likely six) putative algal species. All photobiont haplotypes found in U. pustulata are shared between other lichen-forming fungi species, showing different patterns of species-to-species and species-to-community interactions.
3. The geographic distribution of U. pustulata symbionts associations is strongly connected to changes in the climatic niches. The mycobiont-photobiont interactions change along latitudinal temperature gradients (cold-adapted hotspot) and in Mediterranean climate zones (warm-adapted hotspot). U. pustulata broadens its distribution range by switching between photobionts that posses specific environmental preferences.
Overall, this thesis contributes to the understanding of the symbiont diversity, fungal-algal association patterns and local adaptation linked to symbiont-mediated niche expansion in lichens. While identifying intraspecific diversity of both lichen symbionts is a key predisposition to understand symbiont interactions, population dynamics or co-evolution, my comparative study of the sequence-based molecular markers is relevant to reveal cryptic diversity in other lichen-forming fungi and their photobionts.
The determination of species boundaries in lichen symbionts is essential for the study of selectivity and specificity, co-distribution, and co-evolution. Whereas the phylogenetic relationships of Trebouxiophyceae are poorly understood, the application of a novel multifaceted approach based on phylogenetic relationships, coalescence methods and morphological traits presented in this thesis is a promising tool to address species boundaries within this heterogeneous genus.
This thesis provides evidence for symbiont-mediated niche expansion in lichens and highlights the preferential photobiont association from a niche-modeling perspective. My results shed light on symbiont polymorphism and partner switching as potential mechanisms of environmental adaptation in the lichen symbiosis. The spatial genetic pattern found in U. pustulata symbionts supports the concept of ecological fitting and is consistent with patterns found in other lichen studies. Results presented here relate also to findings in different symbiotic systems, like reef-building corals, where different latitudinal patterns and symbiont switching has been reported as an adaptive response to severe bleaching events. Furthermore, this study is timely in light of global warming, because the identification of interaction hotspots among symbionts helps to understand how lichens or other symbiotic organisms adjust to the ongoing climate change. This knowledge will, in turn, facilitate the proper conservation of the most vulnerable lichen populations. My doctoral thesis provides a conceptual framework for analyzing symbiont diversity, interaction patterns, and symbiont-mediated niche expansion that could be applied to other types of lichen species as well as other organisms involved in facultative or obligate symbiosis.
Genetic engineering of Saccharomyces cerevisiae for improved cytosolic isobutanol biosynthesis
(2021)
The finite nature of fossil resources and the environmental problems caused by their excessive usage requires alternative approaches. The transformation from a fossil based economy to one based on renewable biomass is called a “bioeconomy”. To substitute fossil resources, various microorganisms have already been modified for the biosynthesis of valuable chemicals from biomass. However, the development of such efficient microorganisms at an industrial scale, remains a major challenge. The most prominent and robust microorganism for industrial production is the yeast Saccharomyces cerevisiae, which is known to produce ethanol that is used as renewable biofuel. However, S. cerevisiae is also naturally able to produce isobutanol in small amounts. Isobutanol is favoured as a biofuel compared to ethanol due to its higher octane number and lower hygroscopicity, which makes it more suitable for application in conventional combustion engines. In S. cerevisiae, the biosynthesis of isobutanol is permitted by the combination of mitochondrial valine synthesis (catalysed by Ilv2, Ilv5 and Ilv3) and its cytosolic degradation (catalysed by Aro10 and Adh2). The different compartmentalisation of the two pathways limit isobutanol biosynthesis. Thus, Brat et al. (2012) were able to increase the isobutanol yield up to 15 mg/gGlc by cytosolic re localisation of the enzymes Ilv2Δ54, Ilv5Δ48 and Ilv3Δ19 (cyt-ILV), with simultaneous deletion of ilv2. This corresponds to approximately 3.7% of the theoretical yield of 410 mg/gGlc, implying existing limitations in isobutanol biosynthesis, which have been investigated in this work.
For yet unknown reasons, isobutanol was only produced by S. cerevisiae in a valine free medium, according to Brat et al. (2012). This work shows that this can be attributed to the catalytic activity of Ilv2Δ54, which acted as growth inhibitor to S. cerevisiae. By this logic, a negative selection on the ILV2∆54 gene was exerted, which made the ilv2 deletion and simultaneous valine exclusion necessary to maintain the functional expression of toxic ILV2∆54. Furthermore, it was shown that valine exclusion is not mandatory due to the feedback regulation of Ilv2, permitted by Ilv6. Rather, increased isobutanol yield was observed when cytosolic Ilv6∆61 was expressed in the valine free medium, which is explained by the enhanced regulation of Ilv2Δ54 by Ilv6∆61 when BCAA are absent. Isobutanol biosynthesis is neither redox nor NAD(P)H co factor balanced. It was seen that co factor imbalance could be mitigated by the expression of an NADH oxidase (NOX), but not by expression of the NADH dependent ilvC6E6, since the latter showed low in vivo activity. Furthermore, it was seen that NAD(H) imbalance did already limit isobutanol biosynthesis, but the NADP(H) imbalance did not. Another limitation of cytosolic isobutanol biosynthesis is the secretion of the intermediate 2‑dihydroxyisovalerate, which then no longer is taken up by S. cerevisiae, causing a reduced isobutanol yield. This is attributed to insufficient Ilv3∆19 activity, due to poor iron sulphur cluster apo protein maturation. Therefore, it was aimed to replace Ilv3∆19 by heterologous dihydroxyacid dehydratases. Even though some of the enzymes were functionally expressed, none showed better in vivo activity than Ilv3∆19. Therefore, the Ilv3∆19 apo protein maturation was improved. This was achieved by the genomic deletion of fra2 or pim1 as well as by the cytosolic expression of Grx5∆29.
In addition to the isobutanol pathway, S. cerevisiae was optimised for isobutanol biosynthesis by rational and evolutionary engineering. For this purpose, the genes which are necessary for isobutanol production were integrated into the ilv2 locus, and the resulting strain was evolved in a medium containing the toxic amino acid analogue norvaline. Evolved single colonies were isolated, which presented improved growth and increased isobutanol yields (0.59 mg/gGlc) in a valine free medium, as compared to the initial strain. This is explained by a gene dosage effect which occurred during the evolutionary engineering experiment. In collaboration with Dr. Wess, the genes ilv2, bdh1/2, leu4/9, ecm31, ilv1, adh1, gpd1/2 and ald6 were cumulatively deleted in CEN.PK113 7D to block competing metabolic pathways. The resulting strain JWY23 achieved isobutanol yields up to 67.3 mg/gGlc, when expressing the cyt ILV enzymes from a multi copy vector. The most promising approaches of this work, namely the deletion of fra2 and the expression of Grx5∆29, Ilv6∆61, and NOX, were confirmed in this JWY23 strain. The highest isobutanol yield from this work was observed at 72 mg/gGlc for Ilv6∆61 and cyt ILV enzymes expressing JWY23, which corresponds to 17.6% of the theoretical isobutanol yield.
Isobutyric acid (IBA) is a by product of isobutanol biosynthesis, but it is also considered a valuable platform chemical. Therefore, the approaches that improved isobutanol biosynthesis were applied to the biosynthesis of IBA in S. cerevisiae. The highest IBA yield of 9.8 mg/gGlc was observed in a valine free medium by expression of cyt ILV enzymes, NOX and Ald6 in JWY04 (CEN.PK113 7D Δilv2; Δbdh1; Δbdh2; Δleu4; Δleu9; Δecm31; Δilv1). This corresponded to an 8.9 fold increase compared with the control and is, to our best knowledge, the highest IBA yield reported to date for S. cerevisiae.
Stechmücken (Dipteren: Culicidae) sind weltweit mit über 3500 Arten und mit Ausnahme der arktischen Regionen ubiquitär vertreten. Die medizinische Relevanz dieser Tiergruppe, begründet durch die hämatophage Lebensweise der Weibchen, erschloss sich bereits Ende des 19. Jh. und hat bis heute Bestand. Jedes Jahr sterben rund 600.000 Menschen an den Folgen der Malaria und fast 100 Mio. Menschen infizieren sich mit dem Denguefieber. Zwar beziehen sich diese Zahlen fast ausschließlich auf die Entwicklungsländer, aber im Zuge des Klimawandels und des immer stärkeren Welthandels kommt es auch in Europa und den USA immer wieder zu Ausbrüchen vorher nicht relevanter Krankheiten. So hat sich das West-Nil- Virus seit 1999 in Nordamerika rasant verbreitet. Im Jahr 2013 gab es dort rund 2500 Fälle, von denen 119 zum Tod führten. In Europa traten hingegen Krankheiten wie das Chikungunyafieber (Italien 2007) oder das Denguefieber (Frankreich 2010/2013) auf. Die Gründe für diese Ausbrüche sind vor allem in der Einschleppung neuer Vektorspezies und Krankheitserreger sowie in den veränderten Wirtspräferenzen einheimischer Stechmückenarten zu suchen. Das Wissen um das Vektorpotential der in Deutschland heimischen Stechmücken konnte vor allem durch die seit 2009 initiierten Monitoring-Programme stetig erweitert werden. Auch die Veränderung der heimischen Fauna durch invasive Arten wie Ochlerotatus japonicus japonicus oder Aedes albopictus wird intensiv erforscht. Dennoch ist hinsichtlich der Biologie, Ökologie sowie Genetik vieler Arten noch immer wenig bekannt.
Die vorliegende Dissertation, welche auf Basis von vier (ISI-) Einzelpublikationen kumulativ angefertigt wurde, beschäftigte sich mit der Analyse der genetischen Variabilität sowie der Zoogeographie der untersuchten Arten und der Etablierung einer schnellen und kostengünstigen Methode zur Artdiagnostik. Besonderes Augenmerk wurde bei den Analysen auf die beiden heimischen Arten Culex pipiens und Culex torrentium sowie die invasive Art Ochlerotatus japonicus japonicus gelegt. Ziel war es, die noch bestehenden Wissenslücken zu füllen, um zukünftige Monitoring-Programme besser koordinieren sowie Analysen zur Vektorkompetenz und Genetik dieser Arten gezielter durchführen zu können.
Es konnte gezeigt werden, dass Cx. pipiens und Cx. torrentium deutliche Unterschiede in ihren Populationsstrukturen aufwiesen welche auf verschiedene evolutive Prozesse hindeuten. Die geringere genetische Variabilität in Cx. pipiens lässt auf positive Selektion durch z.B. Insektizidresistenz im Zuge durchgeführter Bekämpfungsmaßnahmen oder die Infektion mit Wolbachien schließen. Die analysierte Populationsstruktur von Cx. torrentium spricht hingegen für eine geringe Ausbreitung, wodurch der genetische Austausch reduziert wurde und so die untersuchten Populationen genetisch stärker voneinander abwichen. Des Weiteren ließen die Analysen des Cytochrom c Oxidase Untereinheit 1-Fragmentes (cox1) Rückschlüsse auf die Zoogeographie dieser Arten in Deutschland zu - wobei beide Arten über das Untersuchungsgebiet verteilt waren, Cx. torrentium jedoch in den neuen Bundesländern weniger häufig nachgewiesen wurde als in den alten und eine geringere gefangene Individuenzahl aufwies. Basierend auf der ökologischen Nischenmodellierung konnten potentiell neue Verbreitungsgebiete für die Art Ochlerotatus japonicus japonicus identifiziert werden. Als klimatisch besonders günstig zeigten sich dabei Südhessen, das Saarland sowie nördliche Teile Nordrhein-Westfalens. Mit Hilfe der etablierten Methode der direct-PCR wird in Zukunft eine schnellere und kostengünstigere Identifizierung von Stechmücken erfolgen können, welche aufgrund bestimmungsrelevanter Merkmale nicht mehr morphologisch zu identifizieren sind.
Um das Wissen über die Stechmücken in Deutschland fortlaufend zu intensivieren, ist sowohl das Weiterführen der Monitoring-Programme als auch die molekularbiologische Aufarbeitung der Proben nötig. Durch die Anwendung neuer Techniken und weiterer molekularer Marker wird es möglich sein, weitere Krankheitserreger sowie genetische Besonderheiten der heimischen Stechmückenfauna nachzuweisen. Aber auch die Überwachung invasiver Stechmückenarten durch die Modellierung potentieller Verbreitungsgebiete und die Anwendung molekularbiologischer Analysemethoden zum Detektieren der Arten und möglicher Krankheitserreger wird ein wichtiger Bestandteil der weiteren Forschung sein.
Get3 in Arabidopsis
(2021)
Der guided entry of tail-anchored proteins (GET) Biogenese-Weg vermittelt den Transport und die Insertion von tail-anchor (TA) Proteinen in die Doppellipidschicht des Endoplasmatischen Retikulums (ER). TA Proteine sind dadurch gekennzeichnet, dass sie eine Transmembran Domäne (TMD) in den letzten 50 Aminosäuren ihrer Sequenz beherbergen. Diese TMD enthält die notwendigen Informationen, mit denen die Proteine an ihren jeweiligen subzellulären Zielort transportiert werden können. TA Proteine erfüllen eine Vielzahl von essentiellen biologischen Prozessen, sie fungieren zum Beispiel als Rezeptoren, sind maßgeblich an der Fusion von Vesikeln beteiligt sowie an der Initiation von Apoptose. Durch ihren modularen Aufbau können TA Proteine nicht mit dem Signalerkennungspartikel interagieren und müssen deshalb posttranslational zum ER geleitet werden. Im Modellorganismus Bäckerhefe (Saccharomyces cerevisiae) ist der GET Biogenese-Weg am besten beschrieben und läuft wie folgt ab: Nach der Termination der Translation bindet das Protein SgtA das TA Protein und händigt es über den Adapter-Komplex, bestehend aus Get4 und Get5, an die zytosolische ATPase Get3 aus. Get3 ist der zentrale Zielsteuerungsfaktor des GET Biogenese-Weges. Sobald sich ein Komplex aus Zeilsteuerungsfaktor und TA Protein gebildet hat, wird dieses zur Membran des ERs überführt. Dort wird das TA Protein an den Rezeptorkomplex bestehend aus Get1 und Get2 übergeben, welcher anschließend die Insertion des TA Proteins in die Doppellipidschicht des ERs initiiert.
Get3 hat im zellulären Kontext noch eine weitere Funktion. Unter oxidativem Stress oder Energie depletierenden Bedingungen wird Get3 zu spezifischen Foci rekrutiert, an denen sich noch weitere durch Stress -induzierbare Proteine, wie z.B. die der Familie der Hitze Stress Proteine (HSPs) versammeln. Analysen haben gezeigt, dass Get3 unter den oben genannten Bedingungen, Konformationsänderungen durchläuft und dann als ATP unabhängige Holdase fungiert. Diese kann die exponierten, hydrophoben Anteile von Proteinen binden, um dadurch die Proteostasis aufrechtzuhalten.
Durch die Bedeutsamkeit der TA Proteinen ist die zentrale ATPase Get3 in allen Domänen des Lebens hochgradig konserviert. Phylogenetische Analysen ergaben, dass sich Get3 im Allgemeinen in eine „A“ Gruppe sowie eine „BC“ Gruppe aufspaltet. Im Modellorganismus Arabidopsis thaliana (Ackerschmalwand) wurden drei Orthologe zu Get3 identifiziert. Eins davon gehört zu der „A“ Gruppe und befindet sich im Zytoplasma. Die anderen zwei Orthologe befinden sich in den Organellen endo-symbiotischen Ursprungs und gehören der „BC“ Gruppe an. Untersuchungen an verschiedenen Deletionsmutanten in A. thaliana haben gezeigt, dass die Mutationen einzelner GET Komponenten zu einer signifikanten Verkürzung der Haarwurzeln führen, obwohl der restliche Habitus der Pflanze unverändert bleibt. Diesbezüglich wurde SYP123 als einziges TA Proteine identifiziert, dessen Abundanz durch die Deletion von GET Komponenten beeinflusst werden kann. Von den anderen beiden Orthologen organellären Ursprungs ist, abgesehen von ihrer Lokalisation nichts weiter bekannt
Vier Orthologe Gruppen in Pflanzen
Da bislang nicht mehr als zehn Pflanzenarten für phylogenetische Analysen herangezogen wurden, wurden in dieser Arbeit die taxonomischen Beziehungen von Get3 zu einander in 50 Spezies der Viridiplantae auf Basis der Orthologie sowie Homologie untersucht. Dies führte zur Identifizierung einer zytolischen (AtGet3a), einer plastidären (AtGet3b), einer mitochondriellen (AtGet3c) sowie einer Monokotyledone spezifischen Gruppe (SBGet3). Die Lokalisation der ersten drei Gruppen wurde in selektierten Pflanzen, sowohl homolog als auch heterolog, der unterschiedlichen Spezies mittels saGFP untersucht, und es konnte gezeigt werden, dass mehrere Get3 Orthologe mit unterschiedlichen subzellulären Lokalisationen eine unter Pflanze häufig auftretende Eigenschaft ist. Das Weitern konnte gezeigt werden, dass manche Komponenten des Präzielsteuerungskomplexes (SgtA und Get4) sowie des Rezeptorkomplexes (Get1) in fast allen der 50 untersuchten Pflanzenarten vorhanden sind. Dies weist auf eine Konservierung des gesamten GET Biogenese-Weges in Pflanzen hin.
Get3a in Arabidopsis thaliana
Da die molekulare Zusammensetzung des Präzielsteuerungskomplexes für AtGet3a in A. thaliana nicht bekannt ist, habe ich Co-Immunpräzipitationen mit Zellextrakten aus weißer Zellkultur und einen von mir selbst aufgereinigten Antikörper gegen AtGet3a durchgeführt. Nach anschließender Gelelektrophorese und einer Anfärbung mit Coomassie Brilliant Blue ließ sich ein reproduzierbares Muster aus Proteinbanden erkennen, welche ausgeschnitten und mittels LC-MS/MS analysiert wurden. Dadurch wurde ein putativer Kandidat für Get5 identifiziert sowie eine Assoziation mit Chaperonen und proteasomalen Untereinheiten.
Um die Zielsteuerungseffizienz und Topologie von ER-Membranproteinen zu analysieren habe ich (i) die rekombinante Synthese eines Modell-TA Proteins mit glykosylierbarem opsin bovine glycosylation Tag (OPG) etabliert sowie (ii) eine Methode etabliert um in isolierten Protoplasten die Richtigkeit der Insertion zu überprüfen. Mit Hilfe dieser Methoden können nun verschiedene Mutanten auf ihre Insertions-Wirksamkeit untersucht werden. Desweitern können durch Mutationsanalysen die notwendigen physikochemischen Eigenschaften für die Erkennung des Substrates ermittelt werden.
Eine weit verbreitete Methode im GET Feld ist die tail-anchor translocation (TAT). Bei dieser Methode werden isolierte mikrosomale Fraktionen des rauen ERs mit rekombinanten Komplexen bestehend aus Zielsteuerungsfaktor und TA Protein inkubiert. Durch einen rekombinanten OPG, der im Lumen des ERs post-translational modifiziert werden kann, ist die Beobachtung einer zeitabhängigen Kinetik der Glykosylierung möglich. Dieses System wurde bislang nur für Komponenten aus Säugern oder Hefen benutzt, aber noch nie mit einem System auf pflanzlicher Basis. Um dies zu verwirklichen, habe ich die rekombinante Proteinexpression soweit optimiert, dass der Großteil des synthetisierten Proteins sich im löslichen Anteil des Lysats statt in den Inclusion Bodies befand. Mittels dieser Optimierung konnte ich die Ko-Expression von Zielsteuerungsfaktor mit TA Protein als löslichen Komplex etablieren. Ergänzend zu den löslichen Komplexen habe ich eine geeignete Methode etabliert um mittels Saccharosegradienten mikrosomale Fraktionen aufzutrennen in denen AtGet3a angereichert ist. Leider müssen noch die Parameter der Reaktion optimiert werden, aber die Akquirierung alle nötigen Bestandteile ist etabliert.
Ziel dieser Arbeit war es erstmals durch eine Kombination aus chemischer Mutagenese und gezielter genetischer Modifikation (hier: „metabolic engineering“) einen Phaffia-Stamm herzustellen, welcher über die Mutagenese hinaus über eine weiter verstärkte Astaxanthin-Synthese verfügt.
Die von „DSM Nutritional Products“ bereitgestellten chemischen Mutanten wurden analysiert und über einen Selektionsprozess auf Pigmentstabilität und Wachstum hin optimiert, da die Stämme aus cryogenisierter Dauerkultur starke Pigmentinstabilitäten und ein verzögertes Wachstum aufwiesen.
Über eine exploratorische Phase wurde die Carotinoidsynthese analysiert und festgestellt, dass in den Mutanten keine Einzelreaktionen betroffen sind, welche für die Heraufregulierung der Carotinoidsynthese in den Mutanten verantwortlich sind. Hierbei wurden Limitierungen identifiziert und diese durch Transformation von Expressionsplasmiden mit geeigneten Genen aufgehoben, um damit eine noch effizientere Metabolisierung von Astaxanthin-Vorstufen hin zu Astaxanthin zu erreichen. Eine Überexpression der Phytoensynthase/Lycopinzyklase crtYB resultierte in einem gesteigerten Carotinoidgehalt bei gleichbleibendem Astaxanthin- Anteil. Durch eine zweite Transformation mit einer Expressionskassette für die Astaxanthin-Synthase asy konnte der Carotinoidgehalt weiter gesteigert und zusätzlich eine Limitierung der Metabolisierung von Astaxanthin-Vorstufen behoben werden, sodass die Transformante nahezu alle Intermediate der Astaxanthinsynthese zu Astaxanthin metabolisieren konnte (Gassel et al. 2013). Es konnte gezeigt werden, dass auch in den Mutanten, aus Experimenten mit dem Wildtyp bekannte, Limitierungen identifiziert und ausgeglichen werden konnten.
Colorectal cancer (CRC) has the third highest incidence and the fourth highest mortality rate worldwide and represents a substantial health care burden and affects the life of millions of people. CRC is a genetic disease caused by the stepwise accumulation of genetic alterations. The initiating event in colorectal carcinogenesis is the aberrant activation of the WNT pathway, but other pathways are also commonly deregulated, including the PI3K/AKT pathway. A number of previous studies using genetically engineered mouse models aimed at dissecting the exact role of PI3K/AKT pathway in CRC, but have yielded in rather conflicting results. Despite the inconsistent results, these studies already put forward the idea that PI3K/AKT signaling in combination with other genetic events might substantially contribute to tumor progression. Since the PI3K/AKT pathway is frequently activated in CRC, it represents an ideal candidate for therapeutic intervention. Although extensive efforts had led to the development of numerous inhibitors targeting the PI3K/AKT pathway, the diversity of genetic alterations can challenge the identification of the most effective therapeutic targets. Therefore, the discovery of shared tumor-promoting mechanisms downstream of these genetic alterations might unravel new biomarkers and druggable targets. The aim of this study was to elucidate the precise role of PI3K/AKT pathway during the course of colorectal carcinogenesis and to decipher novel protumorigenic molecular mechanisms downstream of PI3K/AKT activation that can be used for therapeutic intervention.
To obtain a better insight into the role of the PI3K/AKT pathway during colorectal carcinogenesis, mice expressing an oncogenic variant of AKT1 (AktE17K) specifically in the intestinal epithelial cells (IEC) were used. At the age of 6 months untreated AktE17K mice showed clearly perturbed intestinal homeostasis, but no tumor formation. To induce colonic tumorigenesis, AktE17K mice were subjected to treatment with the colonic carcinogen azoxymethane (AOM). In response to AOM, AktE17K mice developed invasive but non-metastatic tumors, which showed strong nuclear accumulation of TP53. To investigate the role of PI3K/AKT signaling specifically in CRC progression, AktE17K mice were crossed to TP53-deficient mice (Tp53ΔIEC). Unlike AktE17K mice, untreated Tp53ΔIEC; AktE17K, developed highly invasive small
intestinal tumors by the age of 6 months. To investigate the role of AKT hyperactivation in colonic tumor progression, Tp53ΔIEC; AktE17K mice were subjected to AOM treatment. AKT hyperactivation significantly enhanced tumor progression and induced metastatic dissemination.
To get a better insight how AKT signaling can promote tumor progression, whole tumor tissues from AOM-treated Tp53ΔIEC and Tp53ΔIEC; AktE17K mice were subjected to next generation mRNA sequencing and phospho-proteomic analysis by mass spectrometry. Both analyses indicated that AKT hyperactivation expands the inflammatory tumor microenvironment and upregulates pathways associated with invasion and metastasis. Importantly, Gene Set Enrichment Analysis revealed that AOM-induced colon tumors of Tp53ΔIEC; AktE17K animals, are highly similar in their gene expression profile to the CMS4 subtype of human CRC, which is associated with worse overall- and relapse-free survival. Gene expression analysis also suggested elevated NOTCH signaling in the Tp53ΔIEC; AktE17K tumors. Interestingly, while the expression of Notch3 mRNA was increased in the tumors of Tp53ΔIEC; AktE17K mice, the expression of the other NOTCH receptors was unaffected by AKT hyperactivation. In vitro experiments using TP53-deficient mouse tumor organoids with hyperactive AKT signaling confirmed the direct, tumor cell-intrinsic link between AKT activation and increased Notch3 expression. Moreover, inhibition of EZH2 mimicked the effect of AKT hyperactivation on Notch3 expression, suggesting that AKT regulates Notch3 via an epigenetic mechanism.
Knock-down of Notch3 in TP53-deficient mouse tumor organoids with hyperactive AKT signaling resulted in differential regulation of several pathways with potential role in invasion and metastasis and in cell death and survival. Subsequent in vivo experiments confirmed the role of NOTCH3 signaling in CRC progression. Treatment of AOM-induced Tp53ΔIEC; AktE17K mice with a NOTCH3 antagonistic antibody or the γ-secretase inhibitor DAPT significantly reduced invasion and metastasis. Importantly, NOTCH3 expression was also found to be associated with human CRC progression, suggesting that NOTCH3 represent a valid target for the treatment of CRC. This work, using genetically engineered mouse models and advanced in vitro techniques, has demonstrated a strong tumor promoting role for PI3K/AKT signaling in CRC progression and has identified NOTCH3 signaling as a potential therapeutic target downstream of the PI3K/AKT pathway.
Colorectal cancer (CRC) has the third highest incidence and the fourth highest mortality rate worldwide and represents a substantial health care burden and affects the life of millions of people. CRC is a genetic disease caused by the stepwise accumulation of genetic alterations. The initiating event in colorectal carcinogenesis is the aberrant activation of the WNT pathway, but other pathways are also commonly deregulated, including the PI3K/AKT pathway. A number of previous studies using genetically engineered mouse models aimed at dissecting the exact role of PI3K/AKT pathway in CRC, but have yielded in rather conflicting results. Despite the inconsistent results, these studies already put forward the idea that PI3K/AKT signaling in combination with other genetic events might substantially contribute to tumor progression.
Since the PI3K/AKT pathway is frequently activated in CRC, it represents an ideal candidate for therapeutic intervention. Although extensive efforts had led to the development of numerous inhibitors targeting the PI3K/AKT pathway, the diversity of genetic alterations can challenge the identification of the most effective therapeutic targets. Therefore, the discovery of shared tumor-promoting mechanisms downstream of these genetic alterations might unravel new biomarkers and druggable targets. The aim of this study was to elucidate the precise role of PI3K/AKT pathway during the course of colorectal carcinogenesis and to decipher novel pro-tumorigenic molecular mechanisms downstream of PI3K/AKT activation that can be used for therapeutic intervention.
To obtain a better insight into the role of the PI3K/AKT pathway during colorectal carcinogenesis, mice expressing an oncogenic variant of AKT1 (AktE17K) specifically in the intestinal epithelial cells (IEC) were used. At the age of 6 months untreated AktE17K mice showed clearly perturbed intestinal homeostasis, but no tumor formation. To induce colonic tumorigenesis, AktE17K mice were subjected to treatment with the colonic carcinogen azoxymethane (AOM). In response to AOM, AktE17K mice developed invasive but nonmetastatic tumors, which showed strong nuclear accumulation of TP53. To investigate the role of PI3K/AKT signaling specifically in CRC progression, AktE17K mice were crossed to TP53- deficient mice (Tp53ΔIEC). Unlike AktE17K mice, untreated Tp53ΔIECAktE17K, developed highly invasive small intestinal tumors by the age of 6 months. To investigate the role of AKT hyperactivation in colonic tumor progression, Tp53ΔIECAktE17K mice were subjected to AOM treatment. AKT hyperactivation significantly enhanced tumor progression and induced metastatic dissemination.
To get a better insight how AKT signaling can promote tumor progression, whole tumor tissues from AOM-treated Tp53ΔIEC and Tp53ΔIECAktE17K mice were subjected to next generation mRNA sequencing and phospho-proteomic analysis by mass spectrometry. Both analyses indicated that AKT hyperactivation expands the inflammatory tumor microenvironment and upregulates pathways associated with invasion and metastasis. Importantly, Gene Set Enrichment Analysis revealed that AOM-induced colon tumors of Tp53ΔIECAktE17K animals, are highly similar in their gene expression profile to the CMS4 subtype of human CRC, which is associated with worse overall- and relapse-free survival7 . Gene expression analysis also suggested elevated NOTCH signaling in the Tp53ΔIECAktE17K tumors. Interestingly, while the expression of Notch3 mRNA was increased in the tumors of Tp53ΔIECAktE17K mice, the expression of the other NOTCH receptors was unaffected by AKT hyperactivation. In vitro experiments using TP53-deficient mouse tumor organoids with hyperactive AKT signaling confirmed the direct, tumor cell-intrinsic link between AKT activation and increased Notch3 expression. Moreover, inhibition of EZH2 mimicked the effect of AKT hyperactivation on Notch3 expression, suggesting that AKT regulates Notch3 via an epigenetic mechanism.
Knock-down of Notch3 in TP53-deficient mouse tumor organoids with hyperactive AKT signaling resulted in differential regulation of several pathways with potential role in invasion and metastasis and in cell death and survival. Subsequent in vivo experiments confirmed the role of NOTCH3 signaling in CRC progression. Treatment of AOM-induced Tp53ΔIECAkt E17K mice with a NOTCH3 antagonistic antibody or the γ-secretase inhibitor DAPT significantly reduced invasion and metastasis. Importantly, NOTCH3 expression was also found to be associated with human CRC progression, suggesting that NOTCH3 represent a valid target for the treatment of CRC. This work, using genetically engineered mouse models and advanced in vitro techniques, has demonstrated a strong tumor promoting role for PI3K/AKT signaling in CRC progression and has identified NOTCH3 signaling as a potential therapeutic target downstream of the PI3K/AKT pathway.
Hyperparasitic fungi on black mildews (Meliolales, Ascomycota) : hidden diversity in the tropics
(2023)
Meliolales (Sordariomycetes, Ascomycota) is a group of obligate plant parasitic microfungi mainly distributed in the tropics and subtropics. Meliolalean fungi are commonly known as “black mildews”, as they form black, superficial hyphae on the surface of vegetative and reproductive organs of vascular plants. They are considered biotrophic parasites, and the infections caused by black mildews can lead to a decrease in the photosynthetic activity of plants, as well as to an increase in the temperature and respiration rate of their leaves.
Meliolales are frequently parasitized by hyperparasitic fungi, i.e., parasitic fungi that have parasitic hosts. These hyperparasites are all Ascomycota and belong mainly to the Dothideomycetes and Sordariomycetes. Although hyperparasites represent a megadiverse group, species were only described by morphology until 1980, and the systematic position of more than 60 % of known species is still unclear. In addition, there are no DNA reference sequences available in public databases for any of the species of hyperparasites of Meliolales, and no ecological studies have been done up to now.
Before this study, no exact number of hyperparasitic fungi growing on colonies of black mildews existed. Here, we present a checklist including 189 species of fungi known to be hyperparasitic on Meliolales, but the number of existing species is likely to be even higher. The elaboration of this species checklist laid the foundations for this investigation, as it helped to understand the present state of knowledge of hyperparasitic fungi on Meliolales worldwide.
For the present study, fresh specimens of leaves infected with colonies of Meliolales and hyperparasites were opportunistically collected at 32 collection sites in Western Panama and Benin, West Africa, in 2020 and 2022, respectively. In total, 100 samples of plant specimens infected with black mildews were collected, of which 58 samples were parasitized by hyperparasitic fungi. 31 species and morphospecies of hyperparasitic fungi were identified. In addition, 35 historical specimens, including 12 type specimens, were examined for the present work.
DNA of hyperparasitic fungi was isolated directly from conidia, synnemata, apothecia, perithecia or pseudothecia of fresh and dried specimens. The main challenges faced by scientists in doing molecular studies of hyperparasitic fungi are related to the fact that the hyperparasitic fungi are intermingled with tissues of the meliolalean hosts and other organisms present in a given sample. This makes the isolation of DNA exclusively from the hyperparasite difficult. Moreover, hyperparasitic fungi on Meliolales are biotrophs and cannot be grown axenically. The hosts themselves are also biotrophic, further complicating DNA isolation from either partner. These factors have contributed to a lack of reference sequences in public databases. After more than 100 attempts, DNA of 20 specimens of hyperparasitic fungi, representing seven species, has been isolated in the context of the present investigation. Three partial nuclear gene regions were amplified and sequenced: nrLSU, nrSSU and nrITS. The datasets were assembled for phylogenetic analyses applying Maximum Likelihood (ML) and Bayesian inference (BI) methods. DNA sequences of hyperparasitic fungi on Meliolales were generated for the first time in the context of the present investigation.
Hyperparasitic fungi on Meliolales do not represent a single systematic group, but a polyphyletic ecological guild of fungi. Because of this huge diversity, only the systematics of species of perithecioid hyperparasites, as well as of the species of the genera Atractilina and Spiropes known to be hyperparasitic on black mildews was discussed in this thesis, as they represented the most common groups of fungi found in Benin and Panama. The results indicated, for example, the systematic position of Dimerosporiella cephalosporii and Paranectriella minuta in the Sordariomycetes and Dothideomycetes, respectively. In addition, the first record of a hyperparasitic fungus of black mildews in the Lecanoromycetes, namely Calloriopsis herpotricha, is reported here. The systematics of Atractilina parasitica and of some species of Spiropes is also discussed here.
In the context of the present investigation, four species new to science were described. They are presented with detailed descriptions, photos and scientific illustrations. Taxonomic studies of this thesis also generated seven new synonyms, nine new records for Benin, seven for Panama, one for Africa and two for mainland America, as well as the confirmation of one anamorph-teleomorph connection by molecular sequence data.
The ecology of hyperparasitic fungi on Meliolales is complex and far from being completely understood. The hypothesis of host specificity between hyperparasitic fungi, their meliolalean hosts and their plant hosts was tested for the first time, through a tritrophic network analysis. Results indicate that hyperparasites of Meliolales are generalists concerning genera of Meliolales, but apparently specialists at the level of order. In addition, hyperparasitic fungi tend to be found alongside their meliolalean hosts, suggesting a pantropical distribution.
Viele Gruppen der Lebewesen, insbesondere Insekten breiten sich durch steigende Temperaturen zunehmend in Gebieten aus, in denen sie ursprünglich nicht vorkommen(Novikov und Vaulin 2014; Bebber 2015). Hierbei ist die steigende Temperatur in
verschiedenen Gebieten der Hauptfaktor für Expansionen dieser Arten in Richtung des nördlichen Polarkreises. Einige dieser Arten sind sehr tolerant für verschiedene Variablen und können damit ihr Verbreitungsgebiet deutlich nach Norden hin ausdehnen. Aufgrund steigender Temperaturen werden jedoch andere Arten in ihrem Verbreitungsgebiet eingeschränkt oder ihre Verbreitung verschiebt sich in nördliche Richtung (Ogden und Lindsay 2016; Lawler et al. 2009). Auch für die Verbreitung von Krankheiten spielen Temperaturen, Ausbreitungen oder Verbreitungsverschiebungen eine wichtige Rolle (Mordecai et al. 2019).
So können, durch die Etablierung der passenden Vektoren, bisher nur in wärmeren Gebieten auftretende Krankheiten zukünftig auch in unseren Breitengraden eingeschleppt und
verbreitet werden. Bremsen, invasive Stechmücken aber auch einheimische Mücken tragen alle ein Potential,verschiedenste Krankheitserreger zu verbreiten, auch wenn die Eignung als
Vektor für jede Art unterschiedlich groß ausfällt und manche Arten daher kaum beobachtet und untersucht werden. Mit dem Augenmerk auf sich ändernde Verbreitungsgebiete hinsichtlich zukünftigen klimatischen Veränderungen und sich wandelnden anthropogenen Einflüssen sollten jedoch auch Arten mit bisher geringem Vektorpotential mit in Beobachtungsprogramme aufgenommen werden.
Wir untersuchten in Projekt I auf kontinentaler Skala die Verbreitung von sechs verschiedenen Bremsenarten und konnten sowohl Rückschlüsse auf eine mangelhafte Beobachtung der
Arten ziehen als auch Artpräferenzen hinsichtlich der Landschaftsnutzung, Auswirkungen des Klimas auf die Verbreitung der Art und bisher unbekannte Toleranzen hinsichtlich tiefen Temperaturen und äußerst verkürzten Wärmeperioden aufdecken. Eine Größenordnung niedriger wurde in Projekt II, basierend auf aktuellen und Vergangenen Klimadaten, die zukünftige und aktuelle Verbreitung einer invasiven, sich zukünftig ausbreitenden Stechmückenart innerhalb Deutschlands modelliert. Durch bisherig im Untersuchungsgebiet nur begrenztes Auftreten konnten noch keine Rückschlüsse auf die unterschiedlichen Präferenzen für das Habitat gezogen werden, es können jedoch für zukünftige Berechnungen Habitatpräferenzen aus anderen Gebieten hinzugezogen werden um die Art und ihre fortschreitende Ausbreitung genauer zu beobachten. Auf der kleinsten untersuchten Ebene konnten in Projekt III innerhalb eines Mikrohabitates verschiedenste Rückschlüsse auf limitierende oder förderliche abiotische Faktoren, die teilweise bisherig nicht oder nur geringfügig beobachtet wurden, gezogen werden. Ebenfalls konnten Auswirkungen der umgebenden Landschaft auf die Abundanzen der Tiere beobachtet werden. Mithilfe von verschiedenen Modellen und in Abhängigkeit von Klimakarten, Landbedeckungsdaten und Landnutzung sowie Eigenschaften und Toleranzen der untersuchten Arten lassen sich in verschiedenen Größenordnungen geeignete Habitate von einheimischen sowie invasiven Arten identifizieren und zukünftige Verbreitungen effizient vorhersagen.
Insgesamt können, basierend auf all diesen Daten, dadurch für alle untersuchten Faktoren Modelle auf andere Gebiete übertragen werden um somit potentielle Verbreitungen dort
vorherzusagen. Auf unseren Daten basierend können so zum Beispiel Modellierungen für die potentielle Ausbreitung der untersuchten Tabaniden innerhalb anderer Kontinente berechnet werden und Monitoringprogramme können die Ergebnisse unserer Studie als Startpunkt aufgreifen, um durch Beprobung an modellierten Standorten die Korrektheit unserer Modelle zu überprüfen und sowohl Landschaftstypen als auch Artzusammensetzung aufzunehmen um das Modell zu bestätigen oder zu verbessern. Die Modellierung der invasiven Art Aedes albopictus bietet die Möglichkeit, diese Art in Zukunft innerhalb der möglichen Ausbreitungskorridore genauer zu beobachten um ihre fortschreitende Verbreitung zu
verifizieren oder eventuelle Änderungen des klimatischen Verlaufes mit einzubinden und das Modell anzupassen. Die Untersuchung des Mikrohabitats von Culex pipiens pipiens und Culex torrentium bietet, auch hinsichtlich anderer Arten in diesem Habitat, eine potente Methode, Vorhersagen für Artvorkommen innerhalb anderer Unterirdischen Objekte zu berechnen. Hier können, bei ausreichend großer Datenlage, eine Vielzahl von Faktoren in die Auswertung mit einfließen.
Die durchgeführten Studien bestätigen die Notwendigkeit für verbesserte Monitoringkonzepte für alle vektorkompetenten Tiergruppen hinsichtlich der sich ändernden klimatischen Bedingungen, des globalen Handels und die sich wandelnde Nutzung der Landschaften durch den Menschen und darin begründete Veränderungen der Artenzusammensetzung eines Habitates, zeigen Möglichkeiten, diese Konzepte mit bisher
ungenutzten Daten aufzubauen und zu verbessern und können gleichzeitig zu deren Verbesserung herangezogen werden.
Despite all advancements in cancer research and clinical practice, cancer remains a life- threatening disease with an increasing incidence. According to a 2018 WHO forecast, cancer incidence will double to approximately 37 million new cancer cases by 2040. Today, clinical management of cancer is based on a "one-fits-all" strategy. Most cancers are still treated by surgical therapy followed by adjuvant or neoadjuvant chemotherapy based on rather strict guidelines (S3 guidelines in Europe) which are based on studies of large cohorts of patients with the same tumor entity. While this approach has led to substantial increases in progression-free survival and overall patient survival, most patients do not benefit from the administered treatment regimen. One reason for this is intra-tumor heterogeneity, which results from clonal evolution between cancer cells and their environment. This means that cancer patients may respond differently to a particular drug due to the different mutation patterns of their tumor cells. Therefore, patients should be screened in advance for reliable cancer biomarkers that definitively predict whether they will respond to a particular therapy. This would increase the probability of a successful treatment.
Colorectal cancer (CRC) is the third most diagnosed cancer and the second leading cause of cancer deaths worldwide. The main cause of death in CRC is a metastatic disease, which is presented in 20 % of patients and eventually develops in more than 30 % of early-stage patients. Despite the significant increase (to more than 30 months) in median survival with the development of cytotoxic agents and the introduction of targeted therapy, the progression-free survival in the first-line setting has remained largely unchanged over the past decade.
The heterogeneity in CRC is characterized by alterations in multiple signaling pathways that affect cellular functions such as cell proliferation or apoptosis. Commonly affected signaling pathways include the mitogen-activated protein kinase (MAPK)- and the transforming growth factor-β/bone morphogenetic protein (TGF-β/BMP)-pathway. Alterations in the TGF-β/BMP pathway, due to mutations in the SMAD4 gene (mothers against decapentaplegic homolog 4), are associated with different drug response and promote resistance to chemotherapy. In addition, they are associated with a higher recurrence rate.
SMAD4 is one of the most common cancer driver genes, and mutations occur in up to 15 % of CRC cases. Therefore, there is an urgent need for therapeutic agents that can specifically target SMAD4-mutated tumors.
The aim of the present study was the identification of the clinical relevance of the SMAD4 gene and the investigation of its suitability as a potential biomarker in CRC.
For this purpose, I investigated sibling patient-derived organoids (PDOs) derived from different regions of a chemo-naïve CRC tumor. PDOs are 3D cell cultures that reliably recapitulate the architecture of the tissue of origin, as well as preserve the genomic background and intra-tumor heterogeneity. The sibling PDOs (R1R361H and R4wt) shared the most common CRC mutations, such as KRASG12D (kirsten rat sarcoma), PIK3CAH1047R (phosphatidylinositol-4,5-bisphosphate 3-kinase, catalytic subunit alpha), and TP53C242F (tumor protein 53), but differed in a SMAD4R361H mutation and showed a different drug response. The single nucleotide variant R361H of the SMAD4 gene is among the most common pathogenic alterations in various cancers, including CRC.
The sibling PDOs showed significant differences in response to the MEK-inhibitors cobimetinib, trametinib, and selumetinib. MEK-inhibitors are antineoplastic agents that inhibit the function of MEK1 and MEK2, preventing phosphorylation of transcription factors, which leads to inhibition of tumor cell proliferation. MEK-inhibitors are approved for the treatment of malignant melanoma. Currently, they are in phase-III clinical trials for the treatment of patients with metastatic CRC.
To investigate whether SMAD4R361H is responsible for sensitivity to MEK-inhibitors, Iestablished three syngeneic PDOs harboring a SMAD4R361H mutation using the CRISPR/Cas9 genome editing system. All CRISPR-PDOs were significantly more sensitive to the MEK-inhibitors, compared to R4wt. I have shown that the SMAD4R361H mutation is responsible for sensitivity to MEK inhibition in CRC models and may be a predictive biomarker.
To test this hypothesis, I examined 62 CRC PDO models and treated them with the MEK-inhibitors cobimetinib, trametinib, and selumetinib. All models that had a pathogenic mutation or deletion in the SMAD4 gene (15 %) were sensitive to cobimetinib, 10 % of models were sensitive to trametinib, and 8 % were sensitive to selumetinib.
I performed transcriptome (RNA sequencing) and proteome analyses using the DigiWest® method to investigate the mechanism underlying MEK-inhibitor sensitivity.
DigiWest® is a Luminex® bead-based analysis that allows the simultaneous analysis of over 100 (phospho-)proteins. The transcriptome and proteome data support the observation that MEK inhibition primarily affects SMAD4R361H PDOs. Furthermore, I have shown that activation of the BMP signaling pathway in organoids with wild-type SMAD4 appears to be responsible for resistance to MEK-inhibitors. Thus, a genetic alteration in the BMP signaling pathway, beyond SMAD4, could lead to sensitivity to MEK-inhibitors.
I identified four genes involved in the TGF-β/BMP signaling pathway that are frequently mutated in CRC and grouped them into the so-called SFAB-signature (SMAD4, FBXW7 (F-box/WD repeat-containing protein 7), ARID1A (AT-rich interactive domain-containing protein 1A), or BMPR2 (Bone morphogenetic protein receptor type II). Clinical data show that approximately 36 % of CRC patients have at least one pathogenic mutation in these genes.
I tested all 62 CRC PDO models and found a significant positive prediction for sensitivity to cobimetinib (95 %) and selumetinib (70 %) for the SFAB-signature. Trametinib and the newly approved MEK-inhibitor binimetinib showed a similar trend. Therefore, the SFAB-signature has high predictive power for response to MEK-inhibitors and could be used as a predictive biomarker panel.
The current clinically used biomarkers for CRC are based on the mutation status of driver genes KRAS and BRAF, which are present in up to 50 % and 10 % of CRC, respectively. Investigation of molecular alterations in CRC revealed that mutations in the KRAS gene, which is downstream of EGFR (epidermal growth factor receptor) in the MAPK-pathway, interfere with an anti-EGFR-antibody therapy (e.g., cetuximab). Therefore, cetuximab is only relevant for RAS wild-type tumors. However, approximately 40 % of patients with RAS wild-type status do not respond to this treatment.
About 53 % of CRC PDO models carry a pathogenic RAS mutation, about 10 % harbor a pathogenic BRAF mutation. Both, the RAS and RAF status alone as well as the combination of RAS and RAF status with SFAB-signature did not provide a better prediction of sensitivity to MEK inhibition.
Myxobacteria are on order of Gram-negative, soil dwelling bacteria that feature an impressive number of properties: they can glide on solid surfaces by using two different motility motors, subsist by preying on other microorganisms, are often producers of multiple natural products, and upon adverse environmental conditions, they are able to form multicellular structures called “fruiting bodies”. The process, in which these macroscopically visible structures arise from independent single cells, has been the predominant subject of myxobacterial research for many decades. More precisely, researchers have strived for the discovery of genes, proteins and small molecules that act as signals, receivers or modulators of this complex process. In this regard, the species Myxococcus xanthus has evolved into the model organism due to its relatively simple and reliable handling in a laboratory environment. The research underlying this thesis focused on the identification and biosynthesis of lipids that may act as intercellular signaling molecules during the course of fruiting body formation of the myxobacterium Myxococcus xanthus as part of the “E-signal” system. In general, lipids containing branched-chain fatty acids with an uneven number of carbon atoms were found to be important players in this particular process. Nevertheless, their exact roles remain largely unknown as of this day. The first publication that is part of this thesis deals with an aspect that even strengthened the importance of role of iso-branched compounds in myxobacteria: myxobacterial metabolism is able to transform precursors of iso-lipids to isoprenoids. It addresses the question whether isoprenoids in general are important for fruiting body formation. Phenotypic analysis of mutants impaired in the biosynthesis of the central isoprenoid precursor 3-hydroxymethylglutaryl-Coenzyme A (3-HMG-CoA) from acetate and/or branched chain keto acids and their genetic and metabolic complementation clearly showed that isoprenoids are essential for fruiting body formation and confirmed that leucine derived isovalerate is an important source for isoprenoid precursors in myxobacteria. The second, and by far and away most tedious and sophisticated study, addressed the question as to how myxobacteria form fatty acid derived iso-branched ether lipids and to what extent they are important for fruiting body formation and sporulation. In a previous study, those unusual lipids were identified as specific biomarkers for myxobacterial development. No biochemical pathways to ether lipids specific for prokaryotes were known by then. In this study, a putative candidate gene that may be in involved in ether lipid biosynthesis was investigated. A combination of gene disruption and complementation experiments, phenotypic analysis and monitoring of ether lipid formation by means of GC-MS demonstrated its involvement in myxobacterial ether lipid biosynthesis and the importance of these lipids for the developmental process. Heterologous expression and biochemical testing of this gene together with in-silico sequence analysis and docking experiments confirmed the functions of its predicted domains. The discussion section provides an additional suggestion on how the ether bond formation is performed. Furthermore and most importantly, iso-branched ether lipids were found to be essential for sporulation but not for fruiting body formation. In summary, one or several molecules derived from an iso-branched alkylglycerol seem to play a role during sporulation in M. xanthus and a multidomain enzyme unique for myxobacteria is involved in their biosynthesis. The last manuscript addresses the complexity of lipid metabolism in myxobacteria. Prior to this work, there was limited knowledge about the exact composition of the myxobacterial lipidome and no method was available to monitor putative changes in the myxobacterial lipidome down to the single molecular species for studying lipid biosynthesis or regulation. An ultra-performance liquid chromatography coupled with mass spectrometry based method with electrospray ionization (UPLC-ESI-MS) utilizing standard equipment and a water/acetonitrile/isopropanol based eluent system proved to be geared for the construction of lipid profiles for wild type and mutant cells of M. xanthus and to show their differences. Fragmentation spectra based structure elucidation of lipid molecular species resulted in the identification of 99 molecular species comprising glycerophosphoethanolamines, glycerophosphoglycerols, glycerolipids, ceramides and ceramide phosphoinositols. The latter have never been described for any prokaryotes before. Three dimensional plots were created from the relative intensity differences of the single molecular ion species between the different samples to provide an efficient and versatile visualization of the data and enable the researcher to quickly detect differences.
Identification of new natural products from nematode-associated bacteria using mass spectrometry
(2023)
This work aims to find unknown natural products produced by bacteria, that live in close association with nematodes and to elucidate their structure by using mass spectrometry.
The first chapter of this work is dedicated to the detection of hitherto unknown natural products by using a metabolomics approach and subsequent structure elucidation of said compounds. This chapter includes metabolomics analysis of Xenorhabdus szentirmaii wild type and knockout mutants, overproduction of the target compound, identification of derivatives from other strains and MS based structure elucidation.
The second and third chapters are about natural products that protect C. elegans from B. thuringiensis infections.
The second chapter deals with natural products that protect the nematode host without killing the pathogen. I deployed molecular biology methods to generate deletion and overproduction strains of a target compound, identified it via LC-MS/MS analysis and used LC-MS/MS and lipidomics to analyse the chemical properties of the active compound.
The third chapter aims at finding natural products, which are produced by Pseudomonas strains MYb11 and MYb12, respectively. These natural products display the ability to protect C. elegans by killing B. thuringiensis. I identified said compounds via fractionation and subsequent bioactivity testing. After identification, I generated production strains of the target compounds and elucidated the structure of the bioactive derivative.
The last chapter deals with the structure elucidation of peptides produced by an unusual GameXPeptide synthetase in Xenorhabdus miraniensis. I analysed producer strains of GameXPeptides using LC-MS and elucidated the structural differences between the known GameXPeptides, produced by P. luminescens TT01, and the unusual ones produced by X. miraniensis.
RNA modifications are present in all three kingdoms of life and detected in all classes of cellular RNAs. RNA modifications are diverse, with more than 100 types of chemical modifications identified to date. These chemical modifications expand the topological repertoire of RNAs and are expected to fine-tune their functions. Ribosomal RNA (rRNA) contains two types of covalent modifications, either methylation on the sugar (Nm) or bases (mN), or base isomerization (conversion of uridine into pseudouridines, "). Pseudouridylations and ribose methylations are catalyzed by site-specific H/ACA and C/D box snoRNPs, respectively. The RNA component (snoRNA) of both types of snoRNPs is responsible for the site selection by base pairing with the rRNA substrate, whereas the protein component catalyzes the modification reaction: Nop1 in C/D box and Cbf5 in H/ACA box snoRNPs. Contrastingly, base methylations are performed by snoRNA independent, ‘protein-only’, methyltransferases (MTases). rRNA modifications occur at highly conserved positions, all clustering around functional ribosomal sites. Mutations in factors involved in rRNA modification have been linked to severe human diseases (e.g. X-linked Dyskeratosis congenita). Emerging evidences indicate that heterogeneity in RNA modification prevails, i.e. not all positions are modified at all time, and the concept of ‘specialized ribosomes’ has been coined. rRNA modification heterogeneity has been correlated with disease etiology (cancer), and shown to play a role in cell differentiation(hematopoiesis). Remarkably, alteration in rRNA modification patterns profoundly affects the preference of ribosomes for cap- versus IRESdependent translation initiation, with major consequences on cell physiology.
Identifizierung und funktionelle Analyse von Pathogenitätsfaktoren in Bartonella bacilliformis
(2023)
Die Carrión-Krankheit ist eine durch Vektoren übertragene vernachlässigte Tropenkrankheit (neglected tropical disease), die in den südamerikanischen Andentälern auf einer Höhe von 600 3.200 m über dem Meeresspiegel vor allem in Peru, aber auch in Ecuador und Kolumbien endemisch ist. Der Erreger dieser Infektionskrankheit ist Bartonella bacilliformis, ein strikt humanpathogenes, Gram-negatives, fakultativ intrazelluläres Stäbchen der Klasse der Alphaproteobakterien. In der akuten Krankheitsphase, die als "Oroya-Fieber" bezeichnet wird, infizieren die Erreger Erythrozyten und verursachen eine schwere akute hämolytische Anämie, hohes Fieber sowie eine ausgeprägte Immunsuppression. Für diese Phase wurden Sterblichkeitsraten von bis zu 88% beschrieben. Dem Oroya-Fieber folgt meist eine chronische Infektion der vaskulären Endothelzellen, bei der durch vaskulo-endotheliale Proliferationen noduläre, Hämangiom-ähnliche, kutane Gefäßläsionen, die als "Verruga peruana" bezeichnet werden, entstehen. Diese beiden Phasen treten in der Regel nacheinander, manchmal aber auch unabhängig voneinander auf. Die Übertragung auf dem Menschen erfolgt durch den Biss infizierter Sandmücken (Lutzomyia spp.), die in den hochgelegenen Regionen der Anden vorkommen. Klimatische Veränderungen führen jedoch zur Expansion des Vektors auf angrenzende Regionen und begünstigen damit die Ausbreitung von B. bacilliformis-Infektionen.
In der Erforschung der Carrión-Krankheit besteht ein erheblicher Wissensmangel zu zahlreichen Aspekten (z. B. Epidemiologie, Infektionsbiologie, Diagnostik, Therapie), wodurch die Entwicklung von potenziellen Diagnostika, Therapeutika oder Vakzinen verhindert wird. Auch wenn frühere Studien zum Ziel hatten, immundominante Proteine für die Entwicklung serodiagnostischer Verfahren und Impfstoffe zu identifizieren, ist bislang kein validierter serologischer Test bzw. ein Impfstoff verfügbar. Daher sollte im ersten Teil dieser Arbeit ein serologischer Test zum Nachweis von anti-B. bacilliformis-Antikörpern entwickelt werden. Hierzu wurde ein Ansatz aus reverser Vakzinologie in Kombination mit einer Analyse heterologer genomischer Expressionsbibliotheken verfolgt, um geeignete immundominante Proteine zu identifizieren. Insgesamt wurden 21 potenziell immundominante Proteine identifiziert, rekombinant produziert, und auf ihre Reaktivität mit B. bacilliformis Patientenseren mittels Immunoblotting analysiert. Von den 21 Antigenkandidaten erwiesen sich 14 als immunreaktiv, die anschließend in einer Lineblot-Analyse mit 26 Serumproben von peruanischen B. bacilliformis Patienten und 96 Serumproben von gesunden deutschen Blutspendern ohne Reisevorgeschichte in Südamerika auf ihren potenziellen Nutzen für serologische Test untersucht wurden. Drei Antigene (Porin-B, Autotransporter-E und hypothetisches Protein-B) erwiesen sich für die Entwicklung eines diagnostischen ELISA als geeignet und wurden in zwei verschiedenen Antigenkombinationen (ELISA 1: Porin-B, Autotransporter-E, ELISA 2: Porin-B, Autotransporter-E, hypothetisches Protein B) verwendet. Um die Leistungsfähigkeit des B. bacilliformis ELISA zu bewerten, wurde eine Receiver-Operating-Characteristic-Analyse durchgeführt. Für die Kombination aus Porin-B und Autotransporter-E lag die Sensitivität des Tests bei 80,8% und die Spezifität bei 94,8%, wohingegen die Kombination aus Porin-B, Autotransporter-E und dem hypothetischem Protein-B in einer Sensitivität von 76,9% und einer Spezifität von 93,8% resultierte. Dieser neu entwickelte ELISA könnte ein nützliches serodiagnostisches Instrument für künftige epidemiologische Studien über B. bacilliformis in endemischen Gebieten darstellen. Darüber hinaus könnten die hier identifizierten immundominanten Antigene eine erste Grundlage für die zukünftige Entwicklung von Impfstoffen für die Prävention Carrión-Krankheit bilden.
Erythrozyten-Invasion und Hämolyse sind wahrscheinlich die wichtigsten Schritte in der Pathogenese der Carrión-Krankheit und verantwortlich für die hohe Sterblichkeitsrate beim Menschen. Genaue mechanistische Kenntnis dieses Prozesses sind entscheidend für die Entwicklung therapeutischer Arzneimittel. Im zweiten Teil dieser Arbeit sollten die in der Hämolyse involvierten Pathogenitätsfaktoren von B. bacilliformis identifiziert werden. Hierzu wurde eine Tn5-Transposonmutagenese in den beiden B. bacilliformis Stämmen KC583 und KC584 durchgeführt. Ein screening nach Hämolyse-defizienten Mutanten führte zur Identifizierung von zwei Pathogenitätsfaktoren: einem Porin (Porin-A) und einer α/β-Hydrolase. Ihre vermutete Funktion im Prozess der Hämolyse wurde durch eine zielgerichtete markerlose Deletion sowie durch genetische Komplementationen in vitro funktionell bestätigt. Dabei zeigte sich, dass Porin-A und die α/β Hydrolase jeweils essenzielle Faktoren für die Hämolyse darstellen. Durch eine in silico-Charakterisierung konnte konservierte biologische Funktionen identifiziert sowie die dreidimensionale Struktur der Proteine vorhergesagt werden. Diese Versuche bilden eine experimentelle Basis, um die Rolle von Porin-A und der α/β-Hydrolase näher untersuchen zu können und um potenzielle (Porin-A und α/β-Hydrolase) Inhibitoren mit anti-hämolytischer und damit therapeutische Wirkung testen zu können.
Eine verzögerte und mitunter unvollständige Immunrekonstitution nach allogener Stammzelltransplantation (SZT) birgt ein erhöhtes Risiko für Infektionen und das Auftreten eines Rezidivs. Adoptive Immuntherapien können dazu beitragen, die Immunrekonstitution zu beschleunigen. Die Indikation hierzu ist jedoch streng geregelt, da eine zusätzliche Immuntherapie mit Risiken, wie z.B. dem Auftreten einer Graft-versus-Host-Disease (GvHD), verbunden ist. Im Mittelpunkt dieser Arbeit steht die Untersuchung der Immunrekonstitution im Hinblick auf das Auftreten von Komplikationen und das Überleben nach SZT. Dazu wurde ein multivariates Normwertmodell entwickelt, das die Beurteilung der Rekonstitution verschiedener Leukozytensubpopulationen ermöglicht. Der Einfluss der Regeneration spezifischer Immunzellen wie Cytomegalievirus-spezifischer T-Zellen (CMV-CTLs) und regulatorischer T-Zellen (Tregs) auf den Verlauf nach SZT wurde insbesondere hinsichtlich CMV-bedingter Komplikationen, GvHD und Rezidiv untersucht.
Savannas are the most important timber and non-timber forest products (NTFPs) providing ecosystems in West Africa. They have been shaped by traditional human land-use (i.e. agriculture, grazing, and harvesting) for thousands of years. In the last decades, land-use has drastically changed due to the rapid population growth and the growing production of cash-crop in West Africa and this process is still continuing. The percentage of land intensively used for agriculture has increased, while the length of fallow periods has decreased. Such changes have enormous ecological, economic, and social consequences. In the context of land-use changes, there is an urgent need to better understand and evaluate the impact of land-use on savannas. Such an understanding provides insights on appropriate management activities that ensure the maintenance of savannas and guarantee the availability of savanna products for subsistence and commercial use of rural West African people.
The major objective of the present thesis was to study the impact of land-use on savanna vegetation and diversity as well as on populations of two important NTFP-providing tree species in a semi-arid area in West Africa. The study area was located in the south-eastern part of Burkina Faso and comprised the protected W National Park and its adjacent communal area.
In the first study (chapter 2), I investigated in cooperation with a colleague from Burkina Faso (Blandine Nacoulma) the impact of land-use on the savanna vegetation. We analyzed which environmental factors determine the occurrence of the vegetation types and investigated the effect of land-use on vegetation structure and the occurrence of life forms and highly valued tree species. Furthermore, we tested whether land-use has an impact on plant diversity pattern and if this impact differed between the vegetation types and layers (woody and herb layer). Vegetation relevés were performed and the vegetation and plant diversity of the protected W National Park were compared with those of its surrounding communal area. Our results reveal five vegetation types occurring in both areas. Elevation and physical soil characteristics and thus soil water availability for plants played the most important role for the occurrence of the vegetation types. The influence of land-use on plant diversity differed between the five vegetation types and the two layers. The impact was highest on the vegetation types with the most favorable soil conditions for cultivation and lowest on rocky habitats with poor soils. While the diversity of the woody layer was increased under human land-use, the diversity of the herb layer was diminished. Overall, as land-use effects were not only negative, our findings suggest that land-use does not automatically lead to a loss of plant species and to a degradation of savanna habitats. We conclude that both protected and communal areas are of great importance for the conservation of savanna vegetation and diversity. Our study highlights furthermore the importance of different management strategies for each vegetation type.
In the following two studies (chapter 3 and 4), the impact of land-use - and in particular of harvesting - on populations of Adansonia digitata L., the baobab tree, and Anogeissus leiocarpa (DC.) Guill. & Perr. was examined. These two tree species were chosen as they provide several NTFPs for the local population and as they show different levels of human protection and opposed life histories. Thus, they may react differently to land-use. Stands of the protected W National Park were compared with those of its surrounding communal area (in fallows, croplands, and villages). I applied dendrometric methods to study the population structures and combined it with rates and patterns of NTFP-harvesting (debarking and chopping/pruning). Furthermore, the impact of land-use and harvesting on the fruit production of A. digitata and on the sprouting ability of A. leiocarpa were studied. The inverse J-shaped size class distribution curve indicates that the stands of A. digitata were in a healthy state in the park, while the low number of smaller size classes in fallows, croplands, and villages may give evidence of an ageing population. However, a high number of seedlings were recorded in villages. The stands of A. leiocarpa were also in healthy states in the park and likewise in fallows. In contrast, the absence of saplings gives evidence of a declining population in croplands. Both species were strongly harvested by local people and harvesting was tree size-specific. Pruning in interaction with tree-size had a significant impact on fruit production of A. digitata. While smaller trees were more vulnerable to pruning, bigger trees benefited from slight-pruning. A. leiocarpa had a great ability to respond to chopping by sprouting. The sprouting ability increased even with higher chopping intensity. Results suggest that despite the intense harvesting and the land-use impact, populations of both species are still well preserved. While A. digitata can withstand the harvesting and land-use pressure by its longevity, extremely low adult mortality rates, and particularly due to positive human influences, A. leiocarpa is able to withstand the use pressure by its fast growing, high recruitment, and high sprouting ability. I conclude that a none protected tree species (A. leiocarpa) might not necessarily be at higher risk to the harvesting and land-use impact than a protected tree species (A. digitata) as the adverse impact of harvesting and land-use can be compensated by its specific life history.
Important additional information to such ecological findings can be provided by local people. Learning from traditional knowledge and management systems of local people will help to produce culturally and ecologically reasonable conservation and management strategies. Thus, I investigated local uses and management strategies of A. digitata and A. leiocarpa in the last two studies (chapter 5 and 6). Quantitative ethnobotanical surveys among the Gulimanceba people were conducted in the communal area in order to document uses of the different plant parts, harvesting modes, perceptions about the population status, and conservation status of both species. Hereby, differences in knowledge between gender, generations, and people from different villages were tested. Interviews reveal that both species are harvested for multipurpose and emphasize the high importance of both species for local people. Especially the leaves and fruits of A. digitata add valuable minerals and vitamins to the otherwise micronutrient-“poor” staple crops of the Gulimanceba people. In comparison with other studies in West Africa, it has turned out that people in this area could benefit even more from A. leiocarpa, e.g. for dyeing of clothes, for treatment of malaria and skin problems. Local knowledge did not differ between genders and generations, while it slightly differed between people from different villages. The lack of age differences suggests that the traditional knowledge about these two species is passed on from one generation to another. Differences between people from different villages might be explained by influences from the neighboring countries Niger and Benin. Current local harvesting modes and management strategies of both species resulted in sustainable use. However, ongoing land-use intensifications require adapted harvesting and management techniques to guarantee the persistence of these economically important species. These results provide, in combination with the ecological findings (chapter 3 and 4), appropriate management recommendations for A. digitata and A. leiocarpa that are reliable under currently practiced management strategies.
Global biodiversity is changing rapidly and contemporary climate change is an important driver of this change. As climate change continues, the challenge is to understand how it may affect the future of biodiversity. This is relevant to informing policy and conservation, but it requires reliable future projections of biodiversity. Biodiversity is the variety of life on Earth which includes the diversity of species. The species on Earth are linked in diverse networks of biotic interactions. Interacting species can respond differently to climate change. This can cause spatial or temporal mismatches between interacting species and result in secondary extinctions of species that lose obligate interaction partners. Yet, accounting for biotic interactions in biodiversity projections remains challenging. One way to address this challenge is the use of trait-based approaches because the impact of climate change on interacting species is influenced by species’ functional traits, i.e., measurable characteristics of the species that influence their abiotic and biotic interactions. First, species’ functional traits influence how species respond to climate change. Second, they influence whether the species find compatible interaction partners in reshuffled species assemblages under climate change. Thus, the overarching aim of this dissertation was to explore how trait-based approaches can increase our understanding of how climate change might affect interacting species. For this, I focussed on interactions between fleshy-fruited plants and avian frugivores along a tropical elevational gradient.
I investigated three principal research questions. First, I investigated how traits related to the sensitivity of avian frugivores to climate change and their adaptive capacity vary along elevation and covary across species. I combined estimates of species’ climatic niche breadth (approximating species’ sensitivity) with traits influencing species’ dispersal ability, dietary niche breadth and habitat niche breadth (aspects of species’ adaptive capacity). Species’ climatic niche breadth increased with increasing elevation, while their dispersal ability and dietary niche breadth decreased with increasing elevation. Across species, there was no significant relationship of the sensitivity of the avian frugivores to climate change and their adaptive capacity. The opposing patterns of species’ sensitivity to climate change and their adaptive capacity along elevation imply that species from assemblages at different elevations may respond differently to climate change. The independence between species’ sensitivity and adaptive capacity suggests that it is important to account for both sensitivity and adaptive capacity to fully understand how climate change might affect biodiversity.
Second, I assessed how climate change might influence the co-occurrence of interaction partners with compatible traits, i.e., the functional correspondence of interacting species. I integrated future projections of species’ elevational ranges considering different vertical dispersal scenarios with analyses of the functional diversity of interacting species assemblages. The functional correspondence of fleshy-fruited plants and avian frugivores was lowest if plant and bird species were projected to contract their ranges towards higher elevations in response to increasing temperatures. Contrastingly, if species were projected to expand their ranges upslope, the functional correspondence remained close. The low functional correspondence under a scenario of range contraction indicates that plant species with specific traits might miss compatible interaction partners in future assemblages. This could negatively affect their seed dispersal ability. These results suggest that ensuring the integrity of biotic interactions under climate change requires that species can shift their ranges upslope unlimitedly.
Third, I examined whether avian seed dispersal is sufficient for plants to track future temperature change along the elevational gradient. With a trait-based modelling approach, I simulated seed-dispersal distances avian frugivores can provide to fleshy-fruited woody plant species and quantified the number of long-distance dispersal events the plant species would require to fully track projected temperature shifts along elevation. Most plant species were projected to require several long-distance dispersal events to fully track the projected temperature shifts in time. However, the number of required long-distance dispersal events varied with the degree of trait matching and plant species’ traits. These findings suggest that avian seed dispersal is insufficient for plants to track future temperature change along the elevational gradient as woody plant species might not be able to undergo several consecutive long-distance dispersal events within a short time window, due to their long maturation times. These results also imply that the ability of bird-dispersed plant species to track climate change is associated with the specialization of the seed dispersal system and with plant species’ traits.
Trait-based approaches are promising tools to study impacts of climate change on interacting species. The trait-based approaches that I have developed in this thesis are applicable more widely, e.g., to other types of biotic interactions, or to assess the effects of other drivers of global change. Moreover, these approaches may be further developed to model changes in biotic interactions under global change more dynamically. Taken together, I have shown how a trait-based perspective could help to account for biotic interactions in biodiversity projections. The development of such approaches and the gained knowledge are urgently needed to facilitate the conservation of biodiversity in a rapidly changing world.
Discrepancies between knockdown and knockout animal model phenotypes have long stood as a perplexing phenomenon. Several mechanisms explaining such observations have been proposed, namely the toxicity or the off-target effects of the knockdown reagents, as well as, in certain cases, genetic robustness – an organism's ability to maintain its phenotype despite genetic perturbations. In addition to these explanations, transcriptional adaptation (TA), a phenomenon defined as an event whereby a mutation in one gene leads to transcriptional upregulation or downregulation of another, adapting, gene or genes expression, has been recently proposed as an alternative explanation for the conflicting knockdown and knockout phenotype paradox.
Since its discovery in 2015, TA's precise mechanism remains a subject of ongoing research. Majority of evidence suggests that mutant mRNA degradation plays a central in TA. Epigenetic remodeling is also thought to play a role, as evidenced by an increase in active histone marks at the transcription start sites of the adapting genes. Whether mRNA degradation is indeed the key player in TA remains debated. Furthermore, it is still unknown how exactly TA develops, what adapting genes it targets, and whether genomic mutations that render mutant mRNA sensitive to degradation are required for TA to occur.
Throughout the experiments described in this Dissertation, I have designed an inducible TA system where TA can be triggered on demand and its effects on the cell’s transcriptome followed through time. I have demonstrated that degradation-prone transgenes, once induced and expressed, can be efficiently degraded, resulting in the protein loss-independent upregulation of adapting genes via TA. Adapting genes with higher degree of sequence similarity become upregulated faster than genes with lower degree of sequence similarity. Further functionality of this approach to study TA is limited by the leakiness of the inducible gene expression system; however, constitutively expressed degradation-prone transgenes were used to demonstrate TA in human cells.
In addition, I have developed an approach to target wild-type cytoplasmic mRNAs without altering the cell’s genome and reported a TA-like phenomenon, which manifested as adapting gene upregulation not relying on mutations in other genes. Cytoplasmic mRNA cleavage with CRISPR-Cas13d triggered a TA-like response in three different gene models: Actg1 knockdown, Ctnna1 knockdown, and Nckap1 knockdown. After comparing two different modes of triggering TA, CRISPR-Cas9 knockout versus CRISPR-Cas13d knockdown, I reported little overlap between the dysregulated genes and suggested that diverse mRNA degradation modes led to distinct TA responses. In addition, the transcriptional increase of Actg2 caused by CRISPR-Cas13d-mediated Actg1 mRNA cleavage did not require chromatin accessibility changes.
Experiments and genetic tools described in this dissertation investigated how TA develops from its earliest onset, how it affects the global transcriptome of the cell, as well as provided compelling evidence for an mRNA degradation-central TA mechanism. I have created tools to study both direct and indirect TA gene targets and unveiled important insights into the temporal dynamics of TA. Genes with higher sequence similarity were found to be upregulated more rapidly than those with lower similarity. Furthermore, it was revealed that the epigenetic properties of TA responses vary depending on the triggering mechanism. Cas13d-mediated degradation of wild-type mRNAs led to immediate transcriptional enhancement independent of epigenetic changes, which stood in contrast to previously measured alterations in chromatin accessibility in CRISPR-Cas9 mutants. This research has thus significantly advanced our knowledge of TA and provided valuable tools and findings that contribute to the broader understanding of gene expression regulation in response to mRNA degradation.
Light is one of the most important abiotic factors for plant physiological processes. In addition to light intensity, the spectral quality of light can also influence the plant morphology and the content of secondary metabolites. In the horticultural industry, artificial light is used in to enable year-round production of herbs, ornamental plants and vegetables in winter terms.
Until today, discharge lamps like high-pressure sodium (HPS) lamps, emitting predominantly orange and red light and high amounts of infrared radiation, are the most common lamp systems in greenhouses. In the last decades, light-emitting diodes (LEDs) emerged as an efficient alternative light source. LEDs have the advantage of distinct adjustments to the light spectrum. For a usage in horticultural industry LEDs are often too expensive. Furthermore, reduced plant growth can occur due to incorrectly adjusted light spectra and lower leaf temperatures caused by the lack of infrared radiation.
In a research project (LOEWE, funding no. 487/15-29) funded by the Hessen State Ministry of Higher Education, Research and Arts, Microwave plasma lamps (MPL) were tested as new light sources for horticultural industry and plant research. The electrodeless lamp systems emit light in similar properties like sun light. The aim of the study was to determine the influence of artificial sunlight of the MPL on the accumulation of secondary metabolites, plant architecture and plant physiology of three different species (coleus, basil and potted roses). The MPL was compared with other light systems such as commercial HPS lamps, LEDs or ceramic metal halide lamps (CDM). In addition to morphological parameters such as plant height, internode length or fresh and dry weight, the phenolic content of leaves grown under the respective light sources were examined.
Overall an increased far-red light content in the emission spectra of the MPL showed high influence on the plant architecture which was observed in all three plant species. Artificial sunlight from MPL induced stem elongation in coleus and basil plants, compared to the other tested light sources. In potted roses a reduced branching degree was observed under MPL light compared to HPS grown plants.
In addition to the impact of far-red light also the blue light content of the emission spectra was found to be a strong influencing factor for plant physiological processes. A positive correlation between blue light content and leaf thickness was determined in coleus cultivated under MPL, LED, HPS and CDM lamps. Low blue light content in HPS emission spectra resulted in shade-adapted leaves with low photosynthetic capacity and susceptibility to high irradiances. Blue light was assumed to increase phenolic metabolites in basil and rose leaves. Furthermore, the different light treatments resulted in an alteration of the composition of essential oils of basil.
Experiments with coleus plants demonstrated that besides light color also the infrared radiation, had an influence on secondary metabolites by causing different leaf temperatures. Coleus plants grown with MPL showed the lowest content of phenolic compounds such as rosmarinic acid per dry weight. Infrared radiation resulted in a faster plant development indicated by increased biomass production and higher leaf formation rate as observed in coleus and basil plants.
The results obtained in this study show that the influence of leaf temperature should always be considered when comparing different lamp systems. Especially when LEDs are compared to discharge lamps an overestimation of light color can be a consequence since also infrared radiation influences the content of phenolic compounds and plant growth.
Sphingolipids are not only structural components of cell membranes but can also act as signalling molecules in different pathways. Sphingolipid precursors, Ceramides (Cer), are synthesized de novo by six different synthases (CerS1-6) which generate Cer of different chain lengths. Cer can be further synthesized to glycosphingolipids and sphingomyelin. Cell membrane parts that are enriched in glycosphingolipids are so-called lipid rafts and can function as signalling platforms for different receptors, such like the T cell receptor (TCR). CD4+ T cells play a crucial role in the development of ulcerative colitis, a chronic inflammatory disease of the colon. As CerS3 expression was increased in the white blood cells of human colitis patients, the role of CerS3 in the TCR signalling and colitis was investigated in this dissertation. By lenti-viral transduction of a CerS3-shRNA into a CD4+ Jurkat cell line, it was shown that CerS3 has an impact on activated T cells. A decrease of different sphingolipids after T cell activation via CD2/3/28 activation beads and IL2 treatment was observed that was accompanied by an inhibition of Zap70 phosphorylation, an important protein of the TCR signalling. The impaired TCR signalling led to a diminished NFAT1 translocation into the nucleus which subsequently led to a reduced NFAT1- dependent TNFα release. Downregulation of CerS3 in primary CD4+ T cells, obtained from the blood of healthy volunteers, also showed a reduced release of pro-inflammatory cytokines after activation. This dissertation demonstrates a pivotal role for CerS3 in T cell function and highlights CerS3 as potential new target for T cell driven colitis.
Influenza is a contagious respiratory disease caused by influenza A and influenza B viruses. The World Health Organisation (WHO) reports that annual influenza epidemics result in approximately 1 billion infections, 3 to 5 million severe cases, and 300 to 650 thousand deaths. Understanding hidden mechanisms that lead to optimal vaccine efficacy and improvement antiviral treatment strategies remain continuous and central tasks. First, regarding the immune response to vaccines and natural infections, the antibody response echoes the dynamics of diverse immune elements such as B-cells, and plasma cells. Also, responses reflect the processes for B-cells to gain and adapt affinity for the virus. Antibodies (Abs) that respond to the virus surface proteins, particularly to the hemagglutinin (HA), have been identified to protect against infection. The Abs responses binding to HA can be broadly protective as this protein is considerably accessible on the virion. When following sequential infections with similar influenza strains, i.e. two infections with different strains of a subtype, an enhanced breadth and magnitude of Abs response is developed, mainly after the second infection. The effect of being effective to new strains is called Abs cross-reaction.
On the other hand, as for antiviral treatment, the WHO currently approves the use of neuraminidase inhibitors (NIs) such as zanamivir and oseltamivir. Diverse research areas such as system biology, learning-based methods, control theory, and systems pharmacology have guided the development of modern treatment schemes. To do so, mathematical models are used to describe a wide range of phenomena such as viral pathogenesis, immune responses, and the drug's dynamics in the body. Drug dynamics are usually expressed in two phases, pharmacokinetics (PK) and pharmacodynamics (PD) - the PK/PD approach. These schemes leverage pre-clinical and clinical data through modeling and simulation of infection and drug effects at diverse levels. Under such a framework, control-based scheduling systems seek to tailor optimal antiviral treatment for infectious diseases. Thus, influenza treatment can be theoretically studied as a control-based optimization duty (about systems stability, bounded inputs, and optimality). Finally, towards real-world implementation, learning-based methods such as neural networks (NNs) can guide solving issues on the control-based performance. Using NNs as identifiers provide a setting to deal with infrequent measures and uncertain parameters for the control systems.
This thesis theoretically explores central mechanisms in influenza infection via modeling and control approaches. In the first project, we explore how and to what extent antibody-antigen affinity flexibility could guide the Abs cross-reaction in two sequential infections using a hypothetical family of antigens. The set of antigens generally represent strains of influenza, such as those of a subtype. Each antigen is composed of a variable and a conserved area, generically representing the structures of the HA, head, and stalk, respectively. We test diverse scenarios of affinity thresholds in the conserved and variable areas of the antigens. The Abs response reaches a high magnitude when using equivalent affinity thresholds in the conserved and variable areas during the first infection. However, improved cross-reaction is developed when slightly increasing the affinity threshold of the variable area for the second infection. Key mutations via affinity maturation is a feature that, together with affinity flexibility between infections, guides Abs cross-reaction in the model outcome. These results could correlate with studies pointing out that broad responses might be dependent on reaching specific mutations for getting affinity to a newly presented antigen while broadly reaching related antigens. The general platform may serve as a proof-of-concept for exploring fundamental mechanisms that favor the Abs cross-reaction.
In a second project, theoretical schemes are developed to combine impulsive and inverse optimal control strategies to address antiviral treatment scheduling. We present results regarding stability, passivity, bounded inputs, and optimality using impulsive action. The study is founded on mathematical models of the influenza virus (target-cell limited model) adjusted to data from clinical trials. In these studies, participants were experimentally infected with influenza H1N1 and treated with NIs. Results show that control-based strategies could tailor dosage and reduce the amount of medication by up to 44%. Also, control-based treatment reaches the efficacy (98%) of the current treatment recommendations by the WHO. Monte Carlo simulations (MCS) disclose the robustness of the proposed control-based techniques. Using MCS, we also explore the applicability to the individualized treatment of infectious diseases through virtual clinical trials. Furthermore, bounded control strategies are applied directly in drug dose estimation accounting for overdose prevention. Finally, due to the limitations of the available technology intended for clinical practice, we emphasize the necessity of developing system identifiers and observers for real-world applications.
In the third project, the problem of data scarcity and infrequent measures in the real world is handled by means of learning-based methods. System identification is derived using a Recurrent High Order Neural Network (RHONN) trained with the Extended Kalman filter (EKF). Lessons learned from impulsive control frameworks are taken to develop a neural inverse optimal impulsive control --neurocontrol. The treatment efficacy is tested for early (one day post-infection) and late (2 to 3 days post-infection) treatment initiation. The neurocontrol reaches an efficacy of up to 95% while saving almost 40% of the total drug in the early treatment. Robustness is tested via virtual clinical trials using MCS.
Lastly, taking all together, the schemes developed in this thesis for modeling the Abs cross-reaction and control-based treatment tailoring can be extended and adapted to explore similar phenomena in different respiratory pathogens, such as SARS-CoV-2.
Amphibians have existed on the planet for over 300 million years and are today one of the most diverse vertebrate classes in the world with over 7000 known species and still many more to be discovered. However, several studies assume that approximately one third of the world´s known living amphibians are directly threatened with extinction, making it the most endangered vertebrate class. In relation to the relatively small land mass that is occupied by the state of Panama, it supports one of the most diverse amphibian faunas. However, in many cases the ecological role of single species in a wider context and their habitat preferences are still poorly understood and subject to ongoing research. Modern taxonomic approaches in other tropical regions have shown that former assumptions of amphibian diversity were distinct underestimations of the actual species diversity; a situation that is probably also true for Panama. Concurrently, the collection of amphibian diversity data and the description of new species is a race against time. The amphibian fauna of the world and that of Panama in particular, has suffered from an unprecedented loss of diversity over the last 30 years. The reasons are manifold and include destruction, alteration, and fragmentation of their natural habitats as the main causes, but also the deadly amphibian disease chytridiomycosis caused by the fungal pathogen Batrachochytrium dendrobatidis (Bd). In Panama and Costa Rica, this Emerging Infectious Disease (EID) spread in a wave-like manner from west to east causing mass die-offs and reduced amphibian diversity even in well-preserved habitats. The disease has primarily affected stream-associated highland species. The last large-scale evaluation of the conservation status of Panama´s amphibians through the IUCN Red List of Threatened Species in 2004 concluded that approximately 30% of the known species are acutely threatened with extinction. Furthermore, around 17% of the amphibian species that have been known back then lacked adequate data to be assessed. In view of Panama´s already overwhelming amphibian diversity, as well as the variety of habitats and the large number of sites that have not been examined with regard to amphibians before, I started this study with the conviction that the inventory of Panama´s amphibian diversity is far from being completed. Furthermore, when I started this study, it was uncertain if there would be any surviving amphibian species in areas where chytridiomycosis had emerged. The loss of whole amphibian communities in upland western Panama following Bd arrival led to a shift of amphibian research to lowland sites in central and eastern Panama aiming primarily on pathogen arrival and the documentation of epizootic outbreak and subsequent population decline. The situation of amphibian communities in areas post-decline was therefore largely unknown. Accordingly, the main goals of my study were to add to the taxonomic inventory of amphibians in Panama and to assess the situation of amphibian populations in habitats where chytrid-driven declines have been observed. To address these tasks I conducted fieldwork in western Panama with a focus on mountainous elevations between 1000 and 3475 m asl. Additionally, I visited different lowland sites between sea level and 1000 m asl to collect comparative material. In the period between 2008 and 2013, I conducted five collection trips to Panama that add up to a total of approximately 13 months in the field. I have sampled nine regions in western Panama and collected 767 specimens together with student collaborators, 531 of which were collected under my personal field number. Additional data obtained from those specimens include 68 male anuran call recordings, 102 standardized color descriptions of specimens in life, and 259 tissue samples that to date yielded 185 16S mtDNA sequences. This comprises the most comprehensive data set for amphibians of Panama and the first large-scale DNA barcoding approach for western Panama to date. After a preliminary DNA barcoding and subsequent comparative examination of morphological und bioacoustic data of all specimens collected, the number of taxonomic problems that needed to be addressed was higher than I previously anticipated. For most genetic lineages deeper taxonomic analyses were required to reach conclusive results. A selection had to be made with which lineages to proceed in the analyses, in view of the substantial financial and time expenditure that would be needed for a complete taxonomic revision. Therefore, I chose to run deeper analyses on one genus from each of the three amphibian orders in Panama. The genera selection depended largely on the availability of sufficient material and the scientific relevance of the respective genus.
I selected the genus Diasporus from the order Anura. These small frogs are omnipresent in many habitats and thus relatively easy to find. In addition, the genus is underrepresented in taxonomic studies. This is the first taxonomic study on the genus Diasporus to include a molecular phylogeny and the first comparison of advertisement calls between several populations from western Panama. In total, I collected 67 Diasporus specimens throughout western Panama and compared them morphologically with 49 additional specimens from Central America in collections, including the primary types of D. diasporus and D. hylaeformis. Additional comparative data were taken from literature. The DNA barcoding analysis of a fragment of the 16S rRNA gene included 43 own sequences that were complemented with 15 relevant GenBank sequences. In addition, I compared the advertisement calls of 26 male individuals among each other and with call descriptions from the literature. The DNA barcoding approach revealed several unnamed genetic lineages, but in some cases also resulted in the lumping of morphologically and bioacoustically distinct specimens. Generally, the morphological examination of the collected material revealed almost no specific characters that could be used to distinguish between genetic lineages. However, it was possible to identify species using a combination of several morphological characteristics. Which ones are relevant in the individual case depends on the respective species. My extensive collection of call recordings made it possible to test for the first time the intraspecific call variation of D. hylaeformis in dependency of various parameters. This analysis showed that the dominant frequency depends significantly on the body size of the calling male; the smaller the calling male, the higher the frequency of the call. A similar relationship was observed between the call rate and temperature: the lower the temperature during calling, the lower the call rate. I suppose that these general patterns, which have already been observed in other anuran genera, are also true in other Diasporus species that could not be tested in this study. Taking into account the intraspecific variation of Diasporus advertisement calls, I consider comparative call analyses to be the best way to distinguish between species. This is especially true in syntopic species. Integration of the three lines of evidence (i.e., morphology, DNA barcoding, and bioacoustics) led to the identification of four new species, two of which (i.e., D. citrinobapheus and D. igneus) colleagues and I have already formally described.
I conducted an integrative taxonomic analysis of the western Panamanian representatives of the genus Bolitoglossa from the order Caudata, the larger of the two Panamanian salamander genera. Bolitoglossa is very species-rich with a centre of diversification in the high mountains of Costa Rica and western Panama. I collected 53 Bolitoglossa specimens and compared them to twelve specimens in collection, including the holotype and one paratype of B. gomezi. The dataset was complemented with information from the literature. Among the sampled specimens were two species considered to be endangered that have not been collected or observed for several decades; B. magnifica has not been seen for 34 years and B. anthracina has not been seen for 22 years. Further, I collected salamanders at several new locations. To date, my 16S mtDNA barcoding analysis represents the densest taxon sampling for Panamanian Bolitoglossa composed of 21 own sequences that were combined in the final alignment with 47 GenBank sequences. Even though the molecular phylogeny is based only on a single marker, the received trees largely coincide with previous studies and the nodes received high statistical support. In these trees, I retrieve all previously defined subgenera and species groups. On the basis of this molecular phylogeny, I placed B. anthracina, here sequenced for the first time, in the B. subpalmata species group. Due to the fact that B. anthracina is a large and dark colored species it had previously been placed by implication in the B. schizodactyla species group along with other large black salamanders of the B. nigrescens species complex. Moreover, I found deep divergent genetic lineages among geographically separated populations of B. minutula. However, until now there were no additional morphological characteristics detectable to distinguish between these lineages. Additionally, my colleagues and I described a new deep divergent lineage in the B. robinsoni species group as B. jugivagans, a species new to science. In contrast, I found only minor genetic differences between specimens of B. sombra and B. nigrescens. After combining morphometric data and tooth counts from literature of both species with additional data from specimens of B. sombra that I collected near the type locality, the distinguishing features blurred. In particular, including much larger specimens of B. sombra, not yet known at the time of its description, showed that the tooth count difference is dependent on the size and age of the specimen examined. Larger specimens have more maxillary and vomerine teeth. Based on this evidence I regard B. sombra as a junior synonym of B. nigrescens. Further, I revised the Panamanian distribution of the two relatively common lowland salamanders, B. colonnea and B. lignicolor. Besides filling the gaps in the fragmentary known distributions of these species, I assessed the molecular and morphological variation of both species among populations in Panama. While there was little variation in B. lignicolor, I found divergent genetic lineages among geographically distinct populations of B. colonnea that require further taxonomic examination.
Caecilians (order Gymnophiona) are among the least investigated terrestrial vertebrates. After I received a first specimen of the predominantly South American genus Oscaecilia (family Caeciliidae) in western Panama, I started to work more extensively on the taxonomy of Caeciliidae in Central America. The specimens from western Panama were not readily assignable to a single described species, but shared characters with O. elongata and O. osae. While O. osae was only known from the holotype, the type material of O. elongata was destroyed during World War II. On the basis of the original description, the unique feature in O. elongata within Oscaecilia is the absence of subdermal scales in the posterior part of the body. In a referred specimen of O. elongata mentioned in the original description from eastern Panama, this characteristic cannot be examined as it consists of head and neck only. Therefore, I used non-destructive high-resolution, synchrotron-based X-ray micro CT imaging (HRμCT) to examine cranial characters in the specimens in question and took normal radiographs to count vertebrae and to make subdermal scales visible. I found that the fragmented specimen from eastern Panama likely belongs to the well-sampled species O. ochrocephala and has not much in common with O. osae or the specimens from western Panama. Contrarily, O. osae and the specimens from western Panama share many morphological characters, but also show some differences. Genetic barcoding revealed that both species are close relatives, but the genetic distance could not be finally resolved, because 16S sequences obtained from blood samples of living O. osae were of poor quality. Thus, I compare the Oscaecilia from western Panama to O. osae in this study, but postpone a taxonomic decision until further material becomes available. Further, I designate O. elongata a nomen dubium, because the type material is lost, the type locality is not defined in more detail than “Panama”, and the original description does not allow for a definite assignment. Since previous molecular studies only considered O. ochrocephala, the monophyly of Oscaecilia was never tested before. So far, the genus Oscaecilia is based largely on a single cranial character, the eyes covered with bone. Here, I combined two 16S mtDNA sequences of O. osae from Costa Rica and two sequences from O. sp. from western Panama with two sequences of O. ochrocephala and ten sequences of four species of the genus Caecilia, the sister genus of Oscaecilia. The resulted phylogeny contains two well-supported clades, one clade containing two species of Caecilia, one from Panama and one from western Ecuador and all species of Oscaecilia tested. The other clade consists of two species of Caecilia from the Amazon basin. I therefore assume that the split in both clades is due to the rise of the Andes, what led to today’s cis-trans-Andean distribution of the two clades. For now, to restore monophyly, I suggest to place Oscaecilia within the synonymy of Caecilia until more taxa have been tested. When assessing the conservation status of the amphibian species in mountainous western Panama, I first compiled a list of known species that I potentially could have found during my fieldwork. Using the IUCN categories, I analyzed how many of the endangered species I actually found and how these are distributed over families and species groups. Surprisingly, my rediscoveries of lost species were not equally distributed among the four families that comprise most endangered amphibian species (i.e., Bufonidae, Craugastoridae, Hylidae, and Plethodontidae). While I discovered ten of eleven endangered hylids and six of nine endangered plethodontids, I found only one of four endangered bufonids and none of the nine endangered craugastorids. I assume that the secretive living plethodontids, for which no Bd related declines have been documented, were just overlooked in the past decades. In contrast, I propose that hylids, in which Bd related population decline is well documented, developed distinct evolutionary solutions permitting coexistence with the pathogen. The situation is obviously different in bufonids and craugastorids, where I found no signs of population recoveries at present. So far, the only surviving populations of species from these families exist in climatic or physiographic niches that have probably shielded them from Bd. My data confirm the current view that the risk for naïve amphibian populations to decline during Bd epizootics is predicted by ecological traits (e.g., aquatic index, vertical distribution) and not dependent on taxonomic affiliation. However, I propose that only certain amphibian families (e.g., hylids and centrolenids) have the ability to acquire immunity solutions to coexist with the pathogen during enzootic stages. This is a very new perspective on the worst infectious disease in amphibians worldwide, allowing for new research approaches to understand the host-pathogen dynamics. Moreover, I examined where the share of surviving endangered amphibian species is particularly high in mountainous western Panama. As was to be expected, most of the endangered species are found within the boundaries of protected areas. One exception is the unprotected Cerro Colorado region in the Comarca Ngöbe-Buglé that provides habitat for a wide variety of endangered and undiscovered amphibian species. Nonetheless, planned open pit mining would destroy the forests in a large part of the area. This demonstrates once again that human activities are the biggest threat to amphibians in Panama and elsewhere.
Photorhabdus and Xenorhabdus are Gram-negative, entomopathogenic bacteria, living in endosymbiosis with the soil-dwelling nematode of the genera Steinernema and Heterorhabditis. The life cycle of these nematodes consists of non-feeding infective juvenile (IJ) stage, which actively searches for insects in the soil. After penetrating the insect prey, Photorhabdus and Xenorhabdus bacteria are released from the nematode gut. The bacteria proliferate and produce toxins to kill the insect. Photorhabdus and Xenorhabdus support nematode development throughout the life cycle and to get rid of food competitors by providing a wide variety of specialized metabolites (SMs). However, little is known about which SMs function as so called “food signals” to trigger the development process.
The IJs develop into adult, self-fertilizing hermaphrodites in a process called recovery, while feeding on cadaver and bacterial biomass. Heterorhabditis and Steinernema proceed to breed until nutrients are exhausted. Next generation IJs (NG-IJs) develop and leave the cadaver to search for another insect prey.
Photorhabdus and Xenorhabdus can be cultivated in defined medium under laboratory conditions. By placing IJs on a plate containing their respective bacterial symbiont, the complete life cycle of the nematodes can be observed in vitro. The in vitro nematode bioassay was used as a tool to investigate the development of the nematode.
The aim of this study was to find the food signals responsible for nematode development. Different Photorhabdus deletion strains unable to produce one or several SMs were co-cultivated with nematodes in the nematode bioassay. Subsequently, two aspects of the life cycle were investigated: recovery and NG-IJ development.
As isopropyl stilbene (IPS) is postulated to function as a food signal to support nematode recovery, it was used as a starting point for investigations. This study was focused on the biosynthetic pathway of IPS, including intermediates, side products and derivatives to investigate which one is in fact responsible for supporting nematode development.
The biosynthesis of IPS requires two precursors, phenylalanine and leucine (Figure 5). The first topic was focused on the phenylalanine derived pathway. Photorhabdus laumondii deletion mutants, defective in intermediate steps of this pathway, were created. The deletion of the genes coding for the phenylalanine ammonium lyase (stlA), converting phenylalanine into cinnamic acid (CA), the coenzyme A (CoA) ligase (stlB) and the operon coding for a ketosynthase and aromatase (stlCDE), were used. These strains were used for nematode bioassay including complementation of mutant phenotypes by feeding experiments. Recovery of nematodes grown on the deletion strains was always lower than recovery of nematodes grown on wild type bacteria. Feeding IPS to a deletion strain did not restore wild type level nematode recovery, thus IPS cannot be the food signal. Instead, the food signal must be another compound derived from this part of biosynthetic pathway. Lumiquinone and 2,5-dihydrostilbene are suggested to function as food signals and need to be investigated in future work.
The second part of this study was focused on the leucine derived pathway, which involved the Bkd complex forming the iso-branched part of IPS. A deletion of bkd was created and phenotypically analysed, subsequently performed with the nematode bioassay. Not only IPS but also other branched SMs, like photopyrones and phurealipids are synthetised by the Bkd complex. Deletions strains defective in producing photopyrones and phurealipids were also performed in nematode bioassays to investigate effects of these SMs individually. Branched SMs did not have an impact on nematode development, but nematodes grown on the ΔbkdABC strain showed a reduced nematode recovery and almost diminished NG-IJs development. As the Bkd complex also produces branched chain fatty acids (BCFAs), feeding experiments were performed with lipid extracts of wild type and mutant strain. All lipid extracts improved recovery, but only wild type lipids could complement NG-IJ development. This strongly indicates that BCFAs play an important role in NG-IJ development, which needs to be proven with purified BCFA feeding. This is an interesting finding, which could improve nematode production for biocontrol agent usage.
The role of IPS derived to epoxy stilbene (EPS) for nematode development, was another focus in the nematode life cycle. Recently it was demonstrated that EPS does not support nematode development. However, EPS forms adducts with amino acids. In my thesis, novel adducts containing the amino acid phenylalanine or a tetrapeptide were characterized. Another adduct, most likely being an EPS dimer, was also characterized. The biological role of such adducts was discussed to be potentially important for insect weakening and the structure of the novel compounds need to be structure elucidated and tested for bioactivity.
Vascular tumors associated with chronic B. henselae infections are unique examples of infection-associated pathological angiogenesis. The chaotic vascular architecture and prominent myeloid infiltrate of B. henselae induced vascular lesions show many similarities with malignant tumors.
In human cancers infiltrating myeloid cells play a decisive role in tumor progression and vascularization. In particular, tumor associated macrophages (TAMs) transform the tumor microenvironment, drive tumor invasion and vascularization through secretion of pro-angiogenic and immune modulatory cytokines and participation in matrix remodeling processes.
Myeloid angiogenic cells (MACs) are a subset of circulating myeloid progenitors with important roles in regenerative and pathological angiogenesis and a critical involvement in tumor vascularization. The phenotypic plasticity and importance of MACs in pathological angiogenic processes, position these cells as key potential players in B. henselae associated vascular tumor formation.
To investigate the possible role of MACs in B henselae induced pathological angiogenesis, the objective of this study was to examine the interaction of B. henselae with MACs and determine how this may affect their angiogenic capacity.
Building on previous work by Mӓndle (2005) this study has demonstrated that MACs are susceptible to infection with B. henselae and reside in intracellular vacuoles. As in endothelial cells, infection of MACs with B. henselae was associated with inhibition of apoptosis and activation of endogenous angiogenic programs including activation of the angiogenic transcription factor HIF-1.
In addition to angiogenic re-programming on a molecular level B. henselae infection increases MAC functional angiogenic capacity. B. henselae infected MACs were found to integrate into growing endothelium and increase the rate of angiogenic sprouting in a paracrine manner.
When cultured in a Matrigel capillary formation assay, infected MACs were also found to form networks of capillary-like structures that were stable over long periods of time. The B. henselae pathogenicity factor BadA was essential for the induction of this vascular mimicry phenotype as well as the activation of HIF-1 in infected MACs indicating that this factor may play an important role in MAC angiogenic re-programming.
Examination of infected MACs via FACS analysis, cytospin immunohistochemistry and qRT-PCR revealed that endothelial differentiation does not play a role in the B. henselae induced pro-angiogenic phenotype. Instead, MACs were shown to be myeloid in phenotype displaying typical macrophage markers which were upregulated upon B. henselae infection and maintained over long-term culture.
The increased angiogenic activity of B. henselae infected MACs was found to be associated with a broad phenotypic reprogramming in infected cells. In particular, gene expression programs related to angiogenesis, structural organization, apoptosis, sterol metabolism and immune regulation, were upregulated. Further examination of microarray gene expression profiles revealed that B. henselae infected MACs display a predominantly M2 anti-inflammatory macrophage activation status.
Finally, examination of the paracrine microenvironment created by B. henselae infected MACs revealed a diverse cytokine secretion profile dominated by inflammatory-angiogenic cytokines and matrix remodeling elements and lacking expression of some of the most important cytokines involved in the expansion of the inflammatory response. This B. henselae induced activation status was demonstrated to be distinct from the general inflammatory response induced by E. coli LPS treatment.
Comparison of B. henselae infected MACs to TAMs revealed many parallels in functional and phenotypic characteristics. Both TAMs and B. henselae infected MACs demonstrate increased angiogenic capacity, invasive, and immune modulatory phenotypes and the ability to participate in the formation of vascular mimicry phenotypes under angiogenic pressure. Furthermore, the pro-angiogenic paracrine microenvironment created by B. henselae infected MACs shows many similarities to the TAM-created tumor-microenvironment.
In conclusion, these investigations have demonstrated that the infection of MACs with B. henselae results in the phenotypic re-programming towards TAM-like cells with increased pro-angiogenic, invasive and immune-modulatory qualities. The results of this study elucidate new aspects of B. henselae pathogenicity in myeloid cells and highlight the role of these cells as paracrine mediators of B. henselae induced vascular tumor formation. In addition, these findings demonstrate that manipulation of myeloid cells by pathogenic bacteria can contribute to microenvironmental regulation of pathological tissue growth and suggest parallels underlying bacterial infections and cancer.
Interleukin-11 signaling is a global molecular switch between regeneration and scarring in zebrafish
(2022)
The two diametrically opposing outcomes after tissue damage are regeneration and fibrotic scarring. After injury, adult mammals predominantly induce fibrotic scarring, which most often leads to patient lethality. Fibrotic scarring is the deposition of excessive extracellular matrix that matures and hinders tissue function. The scarring response is mainly orchestrated by myofibroblasts, which arise only upon tissue damage, from various cellular origins, including tissue resident fibroblasts, endothelial cells and circulating blood cells. On the contrary, species like zebrafish, possess the remarkable capacity to regenerate their damaged tissues. After injury, instead of inducing a myofibroblast-mediated fibrogenic gene program, cells in these species undergo regenerative reprogramming at the transcriptional level to activate vital cellular processes needed for regeneration, including proliferation, dedifferentiation, and migration. Several pro-regenerative mechanisms have been identified to date. Most of them, if not all, are also important for tissue homeostasis and hence, are not injury specific. Therefore, the central aim of this study is to identify injury-specific mechanisms that not only induce regeneration, but also limit fibrotic scarring.
To test the notion that fibrotic scarring limits regeneration, I first compared the scarring response in the regenerative zebrafish heart after cryoinjury with what is known in the non-regenerative adult mouse heart. I found that zebrafish display ~10-fold less myofibroblast differentiation compared to adult mouse after cardiac injury. With these findings, I hypothesized that zebrafish employ mechanisms to actively suppress scarring response. Using a novel comparative transcriptomic approach coupled with genetic loss-of-function analyses, I identified that Interleukin-6 (Il-6) cytokine family-mediated Stat3 is one such pro-regenerative pathway in zebrafish.
Il-6 cytokine family consists of Il-6, Interleukin-11 (Il-11), Ciliary neurotrophic factor, Leukemia inhibitory factor, Oncostatin M, and Cardiotrophin-like cytokine factor 1. Il-6 family ligands signal through their specific receptors and a common receptor subunit (Il6st or Gp130). Using gene expression analyses after adult heart and adult caudal fin injuries in zebrafish, I identified that both the Il-11 cytokine encoding paralogous genes (il11a and il11b) are the highest expressed and induced among the Il-6 family cytokines. Hence, I chose Il-11 signaling as a candidate pathway for further analysis. To investigate the role of Il-11 signaling, I generated genetic loss-of-function mutants for both the ligand (il11a and il11b) and the receptor (il11ra) encoding genes. Using various tissue regeneration models across developmental stages in these mutants, I identified that Il-11/Stat3 signaling is indispensable for global tissue regeneration in zebrafish.
To investigate the cellular and molecular mechanisms by which Il-11 signaling promotes regeneration, I performed transcriptomics comparing the non-regenerative il11ra mutant hearts and fins with that of the wild types, respectively. I identified that Il-11 signaling orchestrates both global and tissue-specific aspects of regenerative reprogramming at the transcriptional level. In addition, I also found that impaired regenerative reprogramming in the il11ra mutant hearts and fins resulted in defective cardiomyocyte and osteoblast repopulation of the injured area, respectively.
On the other hand, by deep phenotyping the scarring response in il11ra mutant hearts and fins, I identified that Il-11 signaling limits myofibroblast differentiation. Furthermore, I found that cardiac endothelial cells and fibroblasts are one of the major responders to injury-induced Il-11 signaling. Using lineage tracing, I found that both the endothelial and fibroblast lineages in the non-regenerative il11ra mutants commit to a myofibroblast fate, spearheading the scarring response. In addition, using cell type specific manipulations, I showed that Il-11 signaling in cardiac endothelial cells allows cardiomyocyte repopulation of the injured area. Finally, using human endothelial cells in culture, I uncovered a novel feedback mechanism by which Il-11 signaling limits fibrogenic gene expression by inhibiting its parent activator and a master regulator of tissue fibrosis, TGF-β signaling.
Overall, I identified Interleukin-11/Stat3 signaling as the first global regulator of regeneration in zebrafish. Briefly, I showed that Interleukin-11 signaling promotes regeneration by regulating two crucial cellular aspects in response to injury – (1) it promotes regenerative reprogramming, thereby allowing cell repopulation of the injured area and (2) it limits mammalian-like fibrotic scarring by inhibiting myofibroblast differentiation and TGF-β signaling. Altogether, these zebrafish data, together with the contradicting mammalian data strongly indicate that the secrets of tissue regeneration lie downstream of IL-11 signaling, in the differences between regenerative and non-regenerative species. Furthermore, I establish the non-regenerative il11ra mutant as an invaluable zebrafish model to study mammalian tissue fibrosis.
Investigating the influence of truffle´s microbiome and genotype on the aroma of truffle fungi
(2019)
Truffles (Tuber spp.) are belowground forming fungi that develop in association with roots of various host trees and shrubs. Their fruiting bodies are renowned for their enticing aromas which vary considerably, even within truffles of the same species. This aroma variability might be attributed to factors such as geographical origin, degree of fruiting body maturation, truffle genotype and microbiome (microbial communities that colonise truffle fruiting bodies) which often co-vary. Although the influence of specific factors is highlighted by several studies, discerning the contribution of each factor remains a challenge since it requires an appropriate experimental design. The primary purpose of this thesis was to gain insight into the influence of truffle’s genotype and microbiome on truffle aroma.
This doctoral thesis is comprised of four chapters. Chapter1 (Vahdatzadeh et al., 2018) aimed to exclusively elucidate the influence of truffle genotype on truffle aroma by investigating the aroma of nine mycelial strains of the white truffle Tuber borchii. We also assessed whether strain selection could be employed to improve the human- perceived truffle aroma. Quantitative differences in aroma profiles among strains could be observed upon feeding of amino acids. Considerable aroma variabilities among strains were attributed to important truffle volatiles, many of which might be derived from amino acid catabolism through the Ehrlich pathway. 13 C-labelling experiments confirmed the existence of the Ehrlich pathway in truffles for leucine, isoleucine, methionine, and phenylalanine. Sensory analyses further demonstrated that the human nose can differentiate among strains. Our results illustrated the influence of truffle genotype on truffle aroma and showed how strain selection could be used to improve the human-perceived truffle aroma.
In chapter 2 the existing knowledge on the composition of bacterial community of four truffle species was compiled using meta-analysis approach (Vahdatzadeh et al., 2015). We highlighted the endemic microbiome of truffle as well as similarities and differences in the composition of microbial community within species at various phases of their life cycle. Furthermore, the potential contribution of truffle microbiome in the formation of truffle odorants was studied. Our findings showed that truffle fruiting bodies harbour complex microbial community composed of bacteria, yeasts, filamentous fungi, and viruses with bacteria being the dominant group. Regardless of truffle species, the composition of endemic microbiome of fruiting bodies appeared very similar and was dominated by α-Proteobacteria class. However, striking differences were observed in the bacterial community composition at various stages of the life cycle of truffle.Our analyses further suggested that odorants common to many truffle species might be produced by both truffle fungi and microbes, whereas specific truffle odorants might be derived from microbes only. Nevertheless, disentangling the origin of truffle odorants is very challenging, since acquiring microbe-free fruiting bodies are currently not possible.
Chapter 3 (Splivallo et al., 2019) further characterises truffle-associated bacterial communities of fruiting bodies of the black truffle T. aestivum from two different orchards. It aimed at defining the native microbiome in this truffle species, evaluating the variability of their microbiome across orchards, and assessing factors that shape assemblages of the bacterial communities. The dominant bacterial communities in T. aestivum revealed to be similar in both orchards: although a large portion of fruiting bodies were dominated by the α-Proteobacteria class (Bradyrhizobium genus) similar to other so far-assessed truffle species, in few cases β-Proteobacteria (Polaromonas genus), or Sphingobacteria (Pedobacter genus) were found to be predominant classes. Moreover, factors shaping bacterial communities influenced the two orchards differently, with spatial location within the orchard being the main driver in Swiss orchard and collection season in the French one. Surprisingly, in contrast to other fungi, truffle genotype and the degree of fruiting body maturity seemed not to contribute in shaping the assembly of truffle microbiome. Altogether, our data highlighted the existence of heterogeneous bacterial communities in T. aestivum fruiting bodies which are dominated by either of the three bacterial classes and mainly by the α-Proteobacteria class, irrespective of geographical origin. They further illustrated that determinants driving the assembly of various bacterial communities within truffle fruiting bodies are site-specific. Truffles are highly perishable delicacies with a short shelf life (1-2 weeks), and their aroma changes profoundly upon storage. Since truffle aroma might be at least partially produced by the truffle microbiome, chapter 4 (Vahdatzadeh et al., 2019) focuses on assessing the influence of the truffle microbiome on aroma deterioration of T.aestivum during post harvest storage. Specifically, volatile profile and bacterial communities of fruiting bodies collected from four different regions (three in France and one in Switzerland) were studied over nine days of storage. Our findings demonstrated the gradual replacement of dominant bacterial classes in fresh truffles (α-Proteobacteria, β-Proteobacteria, and Sphingobacteria) by food spoilage bacteria (members of γ- Proteobacteria and Bacilli classes), regardless of the initial diversity of the bacterial classes. This shift in the bacterial community also correlated with changes in volatile profiles, and markers for truffle freshness and spoilage could be identified. Ultimately, network analysis illustrated possible links among those volatile markers and specific bacterial classes. Our data showed that storage deeply influenced the composition of bacterial community as well as aroma of truffle fruiting bodies. They also illustrated the correlation between the shift in truffle microbiome, from commensal to detrimental, and the change of aroma profile, possibly leading to the loss of fresh truffle aroma. Overall, the work undertaken in this thesis demonstrated that truffle genotype and microbiome had a stronger influence on truffle aroma than previously believed.
This work addresses the investigation of the biosynthesis mechanisms of type II polyketide synthase (PKS) and fatty acid synthase (FAS) derived specialized metabolites (SMs) from Photorhabdus laumondii.
The elucidation of the biosynthetic pathway of the bacterial 3,5-dihydroxy-4-isopropyl-trans-stilbene (IPS) was one of the major topics of this thesis. IPS exhibits several bioactive characteristics as it inhibits the phenoloxidase of insects, acts antibacterial, but also influences the soluble epoxide hydrolase which is involved in inflammatory reactions. It was recently approved as a treatment against psoriasis by the FDA and is the first Photorhabdus derived drug.
The stilbene generation in Photorhabdus requires the formation of the two acyl-carrier-protein (ACP) bound 5-phenyl-2,4-pentadienoyl- and isovaleryl-β-ketoacyl-moieties. The ketosynthase (KS)/cyclase StlD catalyzes a ring formation via a Michael-addition between the two intermediates which is then further processed by an aromatase. The formation of 5-phenyl-2,4-pentadienoyl-ACP was shown via in vitro assays with purified proteins by proving the influence of the KS FabH, ketoreductase FabG and dehydratase FabA or FabZ of the fatty acid metabolism. While E. coli was able to complement most of these enzymes in attempts to produce IPS in the heterologous host, the Photorhabdus derived FabH was not replaceable despite 73 % sequence identity with the E. coli based isoenzyme, acting as a gatekeeper enzyme for cinnamic acid (CA) moieties. Furthermore, the ability to incorporate meta-substituted halogenated CA-derivatives was shown in order to produce 3-chloro- and 3-bromo-IPS. While studying the stilbene biosynthesis, the ability of Photorhabdus and Xenorhabdus to produce hydrazines was also discovered.
The second investigated biosynthesis was the formation of benzylideneacetone (BZA). BZA is produced by Photorhabdus and Xenorhabdus strains acting as a suppressor for the immune cascade of insects and has also antibiotic activities towards Gram-negative bacteria. Due to its structural similarity towards CA and the intermediates during the stilbene formation, a shared mechanism for Photorhabdus and Xenorhabdus budapestensis was proposed due to their ability to produce CA. The production of BZA was also dependent on the stilbene related CoA-ligase, the ACP and FabH. It was verified in vitro and in vivo in E. coli yielding a 150-fold increase of the BZA production compared to the Photorhabdus and Xenorhabdus wildtype (WT) strains.
The second part of this work deals with the optimization of P. laumondii strains regarding the production titers of IPS. Therefore, several deletions of other SM related genes as well as promoter exchanges in front of stilbene related genes were carried out. These approaches were combined with the upregulation of the phenylalanine by heterologous plasmid expression, since it is the precursor of CA. Another approach applied in parallel was the optimization of the cultivation conditions with different media and supplementation with XAD-resins. It was proved that media rich on fatty acids or peptides led to higher optical densities of the cultures and thus to higher titers of stilbenes. Since IPS is inhibiting the phenoloxidase, an enzyme important for the insect immunity, it was hypothesized that cultivation in media containing insects might enhance the output of this SM. Starting from 23 mg/l of IPS in the P. laumondii WT strain, it was possible to increase the production levels to more than 860 mg/l by utilizing the mentioned approaches.
The last topic of this thesis focuses on the production of epoxidated IPS (EPS) and its derivatives. Under laboratory conditions, only a low titer of EPS was observed for the wildtype strain. However, the optimized IPS strains and IPS-production conditions could also be applied for EPS which led to higher productions and also to the detection of many new derivatives. Most of the EPS derivatives were amino acid or peptide derived acting as nucleophiles to open the epoxide ring and yielding β-amino-alcohols. However, purification and chemical synthesis attempts to obtain EPS failed due to its poor stability. Epoxides were utilized in in vitro assays with amino acids, peptides and proteins to get insights whether epoxidations might act as posttranslational modification in Photorhabdus. The reactions were performed with styrene oxide and stilbene oxide replacing EPS based on their structural similarity. The modifications were executed successfully although proteomics approaches with in vivo data are required to confirm these findings. During the purification attempts of EPS, further derivatives were detected. The structures of dimerized stilbenes, a cis-isomer of IPS and another derivative that might incorporate an amino-group in the resveratrol ring were proposed on the basis of the HPLC-MS data.
Terpenes are one of the largest and most diverse class of natural products, produced by organisms from all kingdoms of life and with important applications in the pharma, flavor and fragrance industries. Well-known examples of terpenes are the pharmaceuticals artemisinin and taxol, the flavor and fragrance compounds menthol, santalol and sclareol, the structural material polyisoprene and the biofuel precursor farnesene. The methods and results presented in this work offer a variety of ways to modify terpene precursors for the creation of new terpene molecules. The application of these methodologies in well-established production systems could lead to the production of new substances, with applications in the industrial fields of pharmaceuticals, flavors and fragrances, and biofuels.
Downy mildew of common sage (Salvia officinalis), caused by Peronospora salviae-officinalis, has become a serious problem in sage production worldwide. The causal agent of the disease belongs to the Pe. belbahrii species complex and was described as a species of its own in 2009. Nevertheless, very little is known about its infection biology and epidemiology. The aims of the current study were therefore to unravel the life cycle of this downy mildew and gain deeper insights into the epidemiology of the disease, as well as to clarify the species boundaries in the Pe. belbahrii species complex.
Infection studies showed that temperatures between 15 and 20 °C were most favourable for infection and disease progress. At 5 °C Pe. salviae-officinalis is still able to infect sage plants, but sporulation was only observed at higher temperatures. Furthermore, Pe. salviae-officinalis needs two events of leaf wetness or high humidity, a first one of at least three hours for conidial germination and penetration of the host, and a second one for sporulation. Additionally, contamination of sage seeds by Pe. salviae-officinalis was proven by seed washing and by PCR and DNA sequence comparisons, suggesting that infested seeds might play a major role in the fast spread of sage downy mildew, which is an important finding for phytosanitary or quarantine measures.
A protocol for fluorescence staining and confocal laser scanning microscopy was established and the whole life cycle of Pe. salviae-officinalis was tracked including oospore formation. The method was also used to examine samples of Pe. lamii on Lamium purpureum and Pe. belbahrii on Ocimum basilicum demonstrating the usefulness of this method for studying the infection process of downy mildews in general.
Peronospora species parasitizing S. sclarea, S. pratensis, O. basilicum, and Plectranthus scutellarioides were studied using light microscopy and molecular phylogenetic analyses based on six loci (ITS rDNA, cox1, cox2, ef1a, hsp90 and β-tubulin). The downy mildew on S. pratensis was shown to be distinct from Pe. salviae-officinalis and closely related to Pe. glechomae, and is herein described as a new taxon, Peronospora salviae-pratensis. The downy mildew on S. sclarea was found to be caused by Peronospora salviae-officinalis. The multi-gene phylogeny revealed that the causal agent of downy mildew on coleus is distinct from Pe. belbahrii on basil, and is herein described as a new taxon, Pe. choii.
In the 'Golden Age of Antibiotics', between 1940 and 1970, the global pharmaceutical companies discovered many antibiotics, such as cephalosporins, tetracyclines, aminoglycosides, glycopeptides, etc., as well as antifungal and antiparisitic agents. Due to several reasons, e.g. the steady re-discovery of already known NPs and the associated high costs, many pharmaceutical companies have significantly scaled back or totally abandoned their NP discovery programs since the late 20th century. Instead those companies started to focus on drug discovery based on combinatorial synthesis and thereby on the creation of enormous synthetic libraries containing small molecules. Unfortunately, this synthetic approach dealing with the optimization of existing NP or antibiotic has its limitations. As a result, leading pharmaceutical companies are re-conducting NPs research to discover new antimicrobials for the upcoming antimicrobial resistance threat. The Natural Product Center of Excellence, a collaboration between Sanofi-Aventis and Fraunhofer IME, is advancing in this context the discovery and development of novel antimicrobial agents for the treatment of infectious diseases through the testing of Sanofi's microbial extract library and strain collection. The aim of the present PhD thesis was the discovery and isolation of novel antimicrobial compounds with improved activities and/or novel MOAs as potential lead compound for a further drug discovery.
In der vorliegenden Arbeit wurde das Zinkfinger-µ-Protein HVO_2753 des halophilen Archaeons Haloferax volcanii hinsichtlich seiner biologischen Funktion und seiner Struktur charakterisiert.
Zinkfinger-µ-Proteine wurden bisher nur sehr wenig untersucht, während ihnen jedoch in den letzten Jahren steigendes Interesse entgegengebracht wird. Im Genom von H. volcanii sind mehr als 40 solcher Zinkfinger-µ-Proteine codiert. Von diesen besitzt mit HVO_2753 lediglich eines nicht nur zwei, sondern vier der charakteristischen C(P)XCG-Muster, was für die Anwesenheit von zwei Zinkfinger-Motiven spricht. Während Homologe von HVO_2753 in vielen Euryachaeota vorkommen und manche davon als Zink-Ribbon RNA-Bindeproteine annotiert sind, ist über ihre Funktion jedoch nichts bekannt. Zur Charakterisierung des Proteins wurde zunächst eine in frame-Deletionsmutante seines Gens erstellt und diese einer phänotypischen Charakterisierung unterzogen. Die Mutante wies, verglichen mit dem Wildtyp, keine Unterschiede im Wachstum in Komplexmedium oder in synthetischem Medium mit Glukose als Kohlenstoffquelle auf. Ein schweres Defizit konnte jedoch sowohl bei der Adhäsion und Biofilmbildung als auch der Schwärmfähigkeit der Deletionsmutante festgestellt werden. Während die Schwärmfähigkeit des Wildtyps durch plasmidische Expression von HVO_2753 in der Deletionsmutante teilweise wiederhergestellt werden konnte, war eine solche Komplementation bei der Biofilmbildung nicht möglich. Die Analyse der Relevanz ausgewählter Aminosäuren, wie beispielsweise das jeweils erste Cystein in jedem C(P)XCG-Muster zeigte, dass die Substitution jeder einzelnen der getesteten Aminosäuren einen Funktionsverlust des Proteins nach sich zieht. Die Untersuchung des HVO_2753-Transkripts mittels Northern Blot-Analyse bestätigte erste Hinweise aus vorangegangenen dRNA- und RNA-Seq-Studien, die eine Co-Transkription von HVO_2753 mit dem Nachbargen HVO_2752, das für den Translations-Elongationsfaktor aEF-1 beta codiert, aufzeigten. Daraufhin erfolgte eine Untersuchung des Ribosomenprofils, bei der keine Unterschiede zwischen der Deletionsmutante und der Überexpressionsmutante von HVO_2753 festgestellt werden konnten.
Eine Variante von HVO_2753 mit N-terminalem Hexahistidin-Tag wurde homolog überproduziert und aufgereinigt. Die Überproduktion und Aufreinigung wurden im Zuge dieser Arbeit weiter, speziell für HVO_2753, optimiert. So konnten große Mengen von HVO_2753n überproduziert und bei nativen Salzbedingungen mittels Nickel-Affinitätschromatographie und anschließender Größenausschlusschromatographie aufgereinigt werden. Eine massenspektrometrische Analyse bestätigte sowohl das Molekulargewicht als auch die Abwesenheit posttranslationaler Modifikationen. Die Untersuchung der Menge an gebundenem Zink im Protein erfolgte beim Zink-Assay mit Hilfe des hochsensitiven und hochspezifischen Fluorophors ZnAF-2F. Dabei konnte gezeigt werden, dass überraschenderweise lediglich ein Zink-Ion in HVO_2753 gebunden vorliegt.
Zur weiteren Funktionsaufklärung erfolgte eine Interaktionspartnersuche. Hierfür wurde HVO_2753 überproduziert, ein in vivo-Crosslink und anschließend eine native Aufreinung durchgeführt. Die massenspektrometrische Analyse ausgewählter Fraktionen nach der Größenausschlusschromatographie ergaben eine Vielzahl an möglichen Bindepartnern. Besonders häufig wurde hier die GalE family Epimerase/Dehydratase gefunden. Eine weitere Methode zur Suche nach Interaktionspartnern richtete sich auf RNAs. Hier konnten mittels eines eigens entwickelten Protokolls neben RNAs des Translationsapparates auch mehrfach die tRNA(Glu) gefunden werden.
Zusätzlich sollte die Transkriptomanalyse mittels RNA-Sequenzierung Unterschiede zwischen Wildtyp, Deletionsmutante und Komplementationsmutante aufzeigen. Hier wurden weitreichende Auswirkungen der Deletion von HVO_2753 gefunden. Zahlreiche Gene in mehreren Operons zur Motilität und Chemotaxis lagen in der Deletionsmutante stark herunterreguliert vor, während die Gene einiger Metallionen-Transporter und der Eisen(III)-Siderophor-Biosynthese hochreguliert vorlagen. In der Komplementationsmutante konnten nur von den letzteren Genen Transkriptlevel vergleichbar mit denen des Wildtyps wiedergefunden werden.
In dieser Arbeit konnte gezeigt werden, dass das kleine Zinkfinger-Protein HVO_2753 eine essenzielle Rolle in der positiven Regulation der Motilität, Chemotaxis und der Adhäsion bzw. Biofilmbildung spielt. Gleichzeitig übt HVO_2753 eine negative Regulation auf den Metallionen-Transport und die Biosynthese des Eisen(III)-Siderophors aus.
Die Verarbeitung während des Hörprozesses von Säugetieren verläuft von der Kochlea mit den inneren und äußeren Haarsinneszellen (äHZ) über afferente Nervenbahnen bis zum auditorischen Kortex (AK). Die daran beteiligten Schaltstationen und deren Funktion sind überwiegend aufgeklärt. Die Hörbahn ist zudem in besonderer Weise durch efferente Rückkopplungen gekennzeichnet, die interne Modulationen sowie sekundäre Reaktionen auf den Reiz ermöglichen. Anatomisch betrachtet verlaufen efferente Projektionen vom AK zu sämtlichen am Hörprozess beteiligten Kerngebieten. Vom Olivenkomplex erfolgt über mediale und laterale Fasern eine Innervation der äHZ bzw. des Hörnervs. Trotz der gut beschriebenen Anatomie ist die funktionelle Beziehung zwischen dem AK und der Peripherie weitgehend ungeklärt. In der vorliegenden Arbeit wurde der funktionelle Zusammenhang vom AK zu den äHZ in der mongolischen Wüstenrennmaus untersucht. Dafür wurde entweder eine pharmakologische Blockierung der Kortexaktivität durch den Natriumkanalblocker Lidocain erzeugt oder eine Aktivierung der Kortexaktivität durch die Anwendung elektrischer Reize ausgelöst. Der Einfluss der Manipulationen wurde in der Kochlea mittels Messungen von Distorsionsprodukt-otoakustischen Emissionen (DPOAE) erfasst. Diese entstehen durch die nichtlineare Verstärkung leiser Schallsignale durch die äHZ zur Erzielung hoher Sensitivität und Frequenzauflösung. Die DPOAE treten als kubische (z. B. 2f1-f2) und quadratische (z. B. f2-f1) Verzerrungen auf und geben Aufschluss über unterschiedliche Parameter der äHZ-Verstärkungsfunktion.
Die Lidocainversuche wurden entweder kontra- oder ipsilateral zur DPOAE-Messung durchgeführt. In beiden Konstellationen traten nach der Lidocaininjektion Erhöhungen und Verringerungen der DPOAE-Pegel im Vergleich zur Basismessung oder unveränderte DPOAE-Pegel auf. Im Mittel lagen die Pegeländerungen bei ca. 11 dB, in Einzelfällen betrugen sie bis zu 44,8 dB. In den Gesamtdaten waren die Effekte nach kontralateraler Injektion oft signifikant größer als nach ipsilateraler Injektion. Ebenso waren die Effekte in der 2f1-f2 Emission meist signifikant größer als in der f2-f1 Emission. Zudem wurde beobachtet, dass signifikant größere Effekte bei einer Stimulation mit Pegeln von 60/50 dB SPL im Vergleich zu 40/30 dB SPL erreicht wurden. Grundsätzlich trat in allen Datensätzen eine Reversibilität der DPOAE-Pegel mit zunehmender Versuchsdauer auf. Die Effekte waren direkt nach der Injektion am größten und erreichten je nach Stimuluspegel und Emissionstyp nach 28-100 min die Basispegel. In keinem der Datensätze lag eine Abhängigkeit der im Kortex gereizten charakteristischen Frequenz (CF) zum betroffenen Frequenzbereich in der Kochlea vor. Die Effekte waren über den gesamten gemessenen Frequenzbereich von 1-40 kHz nachweisbar. Allerdings waren die Frequenzbereiche von 1-10 kHz und 30,5-40 kHz besonders stark von der Lidocaininjektion betroffen.
Auch nach der elektrischen Reizung wurden die drei oben beschriebenen Effekttypen definiert. Mit 54,6 % war der Prozentsatz unveränderter DPOAE-Pegel allerdings sehr hoch. In den anderen beiden Kategorien konnten zusätzlich Differenzierungen im zeitlichen Verhalten der DPOAE-Pegel vorgenommen werden. In 21,6 % bzw. 16,5 % der Datensätze waren die Verringerungen bzw. Erhöhungen bis zum letzten gemessenen Zeitpunkt nach der elektrischen Reizung irreversibel und nur in jeweils 2,8 % der Datensätze war eine Reversibilität zu verzeichnen. In diesen Fällen war die Effektdauer mit im Mittel 31 bzw. 25 min kürzer als in den Lidocainversuchen. Auch die Effektstärken waren mit maximal 23,9 dB und je nach Effekttyp im Mittel 5,1-13,7 dB geringer als nach der Lidocaininjektion. Die größten Effekte traten in einem mittleren Stimuluspegelbereich von 45-55 dB SPL auf. Wiederum konnte keine Abhängigkeit des betroffenen Frequenzbereichs von der kortikal gereizten CF nachgewiesen werden. In Einzelfällen waren auf DPOAE-Ebene nur die Frequenzen ober- und unterhalb der kortikalen CF beeinflusst, wohingegen bei der CF selbst keine Effekte auftraten.
Durch Kontrollexperimente (Salineinjektion bzw. Einführen der Elektrode ohne elektrische Reizung) konnte nachgewiesen werden, dass die Effekte durch die Manipulation der Kortexaktivität hervorgerufen wurden. Somit liegt eine funktionelle Beziehung zwischen dem AK und der Peripherie vor, die langanhaltende massive Ausmaße annehmen kann. Die Effektrichtung ist vermutlich durch die exzitatorisch oder inhibitorisch wirkenden Neurone vom Colliculus inferior zum Olivenkomplex bedingt. Die größeren Effekte in der kontralateralen Konfiguration lassen sich durch die Diskrepanz in der Anzahl der gekreuzten (2/3) und ungekreuzten (1/3) medialen Efferenzen erklären. Die kubischen Komponenten der äHZ-Verstärkungsfunktion scheinen stärker beeinflusst zu sein als die quadratischen Komponenten, was in größeren Pegeländerungen in der 2f1-f2 Emission resultiert. Die teils großen Effektstärken sowie die nicht vorhandene Frequenzabhängigkeit zwischen AK und Kochlea sind vermutlich auf den großen Kortexbereich zurückzuführen, der von den gewählten Injektionsvolumina bzw. elektrischen Reizstärken betroffen war. Die großen Effekte im mittleren Stimuluspegelbereich lassen sich sowohl mit einer möglichen Schutzfunktion der Efferenzen vor zu lauten Schallereignissen als auch mit einer Verbesserung des Signal-Rausch-Verhältnisses zur erleichterten Detektion akustischer Signale in Einklang bringen. Insgesamt deuten die Ergebnisse darauf hin, dass die Aktivität des AK einen starken Einfluss auf periphere auditorische Mechanismen hat, wodurch die kochleäre Verarbeitung akustischer Signale je nach kortikalem Verarbeitungsstatus massiv modifiziert werden kann.
Das Gehirn weist in mehreren Bereichen anatomische Asymmetrien zwischen beiden Hemisphären auf, so auch in Bereichen der Hörrinde. Zudem ist bereits langjährig bekannt, dass menschliche Sprache vorrangig in der linken Gehirnhälfte, d.h. linksseitig lateralisiert, verarbeitet wird. Daraus folgend stellt sich die Frage, ob dies eine besondere Spezialisierung ist, oder ob es noch weitere lateralisierte Hirnfunktionen gibt. Viele akustische Signale haben dabei frequenzmodulierte (FM) Komponenten, die im Hörsystem für die Erkennung nach Parametern wie Richtung und Dauer der Modulation analysiert werden müssen. Ob die Analyse von FM-Komponenten oder einzelner Reizparameter im Gehirn lateralisiert stattfindet, wurde in der Literatur meist mit bildgebenden Verfahren untersucht.
Für das Erkennen und Unterscheiden der Modulationsrichtung weist eine Vielzahl von Studien auf eine erhöhte Aktivität in der rechten Hörrinde hin. Für die Analyse von Stimulusdauern ist es bisher allerdings noch unklar bzw. umstritten, ob diese lateralisiert erfolgt. Für die Untersuchung der Lateralisierung einfacher Sprachkomponenten werden häufig Konsonant-Vokal-Silben (CV-Silben) verwendet. In einer Vielzahl von Studien konnte eine linkslastige Lateralisierung, wie bei der Spracherkennung, gezeigt werden.
In der vorliegenden Arbeit wurde nun untersucht, ob ein eindeutigeres Muster von Lateralisierung zu finden ist, wenn diese in Wahrnehmungsexperimenten, untersucht wird. Dabei wurde ein zu untersuchender Teststimulus (FM-/CV-Stimulus) auf einem Ohr mit einem kontralateralen breitbandigen Rauschen auf dem anderen Ohr gleichzeitig präsentiert. Durch die Struktur der Hörbahn kann dabei davon ausgegangen werden, dass in einer Hemisphäre des Vorderhirns vorrangig Informationen aus dem kontralateralen Ohr verarbeitet und Informationen aus dem ipsilateralen Ohr unterdrückt werden und sich somit Rückschlüsse auf die Funktion/Beteiligung einer Hemishpäre ziehen lassen. Das Rauschen diente dabei zur unspezifischen Aktivierung der gegenüberliegenden Hemisphäre.
Die Lateralisierung wurde systematisch für unterschiedlich komplexe Reize untersucht. Dazu wurden in zwei Versuchsreihen Unterscheidungsexperimente durchgeführt, die sich in mehrere Messungen (mit mehreren Durchläufen) mit unterschiedlichen Parametereinstellungen gliederten. Pro Durchlauf musste sich die Versuchsperson immer zwischen zwei Antwortmöglichkeiten entscheiden (2-AFC-Verfahren). Der Schalldruckpegel des Rauschens war dabei für alle Messungen konstant. Der Schalldruckpegel der Teststimuli blieb zwar während einer Messung konstant, wurde jedoch innerhalb eines Experimentes von Messung zu Messung reduziert.
In einer gemeinsamen Analyse wurden jeweils die Fehlerraten und Reaktionszeiten beider Ohren, getrennt nach Seite und FM-/ CV-Stimulus, miteinander verglichen, um so auf eine mögliche Lateralisierung schließen zu können. Damit die Daten der Versuchspersonen bei vergleichbarer Schwierigkeit analysiert werden konnten, wurde als Vergleichswert zwischen allen Versuchspersonen der Schalldruckpegel der ersten Messung mit einer Fehlerrate von mindestens 15,0 % gewählt (15 %-Kriterium). Um auszuschließen, dass das Hörvermögen der Versuchspersonen Unterschiede zwischen beiden Ohren aufweist, wurde vor jeder Messung der „Punkt subjektiver Gleichheit“ für die Lautstärke-wahrnehmung zwischen linkem und rechten Ohr bestimmt.
In der ersten Versuchsreihe wurde dabei die Verarbeitung der Modulationsrichtung und der Stimulusdauer von FM-Stimuli untersucht. Es zeigte sich für beide Experimente, dass ein sinkender Schalldruckpegel des FM-Stimulus zu einer steigenden Fehlerrate führte. Unter Anwendung des 15 %-Kriteriums waren die Fehlerraten für die Unterscheidung der Modulationsrichtung signifikant geringer, wenn der FM-Stimulus auf dem linken Ohr präsentiert wurde. Dies ist ein deutlicher Hinweis für eine rechtslastige Lateralisierung.
Für die Unterscheidung der Stimulusdauer gab es dagegen keinen signifikanten Unterschied zwischen den Fehlerraten beider Ohren. Somit muss davon ausgegangen werden, dass beide Hemisphären für diese Aufgabe benötigt werden und eine bilaterale Verarbeitung stattfindet. In den Reaktionszeiten konnten in beiden Experimente keine signifikanten Unterschiede gezeigt werden. Die Unterscheidung der Modulationsrichtung wurde dabei von allen Versuchspersonen als einfacher eingestuft als die Unterscheidung der Stimulusdauer, was sich auch in niedrigeren Antwortschnelligkeit und Fehlerraten bei vergleichbaren Schalldruckpegeln zeigte.
In der zweiten Versuchsreihe wurde als Referenzmessung nochmals die Unterscheidung der Modulationsrichtungen von FM-Stimuli durchgeführt. Anschließend wurde die Unterscheidung von „da“ und „ga“ untersucht. Diese CV-Silben differieren ausschließlich in der FM-Komponente. Die Untercheidung von CV-Silben ohne Unterschied in der FM-Komponente wurde mittels „ta“ und „ka“ getestet. Für alle drei Experimente zeigte sich, dass ein geringerer Schalldruckpegel des FM- oder CV-Stimulus zu einer steigenden Fehlerrate führte. Unter Anwendung des 15 %-Kriteriums zeigte sich für die Unterscheidung der Modulationsrichtung ein Trend zu niedrigeren Fehlerraten bei der Präsentation des FM-Stimulus auf dem linken im Vergleich mit dem rechten Ohr. In den Reaktionszeiten konnten keine signifikanten Unterschiede gezeigt werden.
Für die Unterscheidung von „da“ und „ga“ ließ sich unter Anwendung des 15 %-Kriteriums in den Fehlerraten und Reaktionszeiten kein Vorteil eines Ohres nachweisen. Dagegen zeigten sich klare Unterschiede bei einzelnen Versuchspersonen. So waren die Fehlerraten für Versuchspersonen, die vorwiegend „da“ erkannt bzw. gehört hatten signifikant höher, wenn der CV-Stimulus auf dem rechten Ohr präsentiert wurde, für „ga“-Hörer war das Gegenteil der Fall. In den Reaktionszeiten konnte kein signifikanter Zusammenhang nachgewiesen werden. Somit ließ sich zeigen, dass je nach Strategie der Versuchsperson bzw. deren individueller Wahrnehmung der CV-Silben, Unterschiede in der Lateralisierung erreicht werden können.
Für die Unterscheidung von „ta“ und „ka“ zeigten sich unter Anwendung des 15 %-Kriteriums signifikant niedrigere Fehlerraten und Reaktionszeiten, wenn der CV-Stimulus auf dem linken Ohr präsentiert wurde. Dies weist deutlich auf eine rechtslastige Lateralisierung hin. Vergleicht man alle drei Experimente ließ sich zudem zeigen, dass die Unterscheidung der Modulationsrichtung einfacher war als die Unterscheidung verschiedener CV-Stimuli. Dabei war die Unterscheidung von „da“ und „ga“ für die Versuchspersonen schwieriger als die Unterscheidung von „ta“ und „ka“. Allerdings konnte in den Lateralisierungsdaten kein direkter Zusammenhang zwischen den FM- und „da“-/„ga“-Stimuli gezeigt werden.
Zusammenfassend konnte in allen fünf Experimenten eine verschieden stark lateralisierte Verarbeitung von akustischen Stimuli bei gleichzeitigem kontralateralen Rauschen gezeigt werden. Der Vorteil eines Ohres (bzw. einer Hemisphäre) war sowohl von der Aufgabe als auch vom Stimulustyp abhängig. Dabei gab es zum Teil starke Unterschiede in der Effektstärke und dem Grad der Lateralisierung zwischen den einzelnen Versuchspersonen. Insgesamt konnte gezeigt werden, dass sich die hier angewendete psychophysische Methode gut eignet, um Ergebnisse zur Lateralisierung von akustischen Stimuli zu gewinnen und somit die Verhaltensrelevanz von Ergebnissen aus Studien mit bildgebenden Verfahren zu überprüfen.